Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n scripture_n speak_v 4,012 5 5.0509 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A42287 An apology for M. Antonia Bourignon in four parts ... : to which are added two letters from different hands, containing remarks on the preface to The snake in the grass and Bourignianism detected : as also some of her own letters, whereby her true Christian spirit and sentiments are farther justified and vindicated, particularly as to the doctrine of the merits and satisfaction of Jesus Christ. Garden, George, 1649-1733.; Bourignon, Antoinette, 1616-1680.; De Heyde, Dr. 1699 (1699) Wing G218; ESTC R18554 402,086 456

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o can_v contradict_v himself_o for_o god_n be_v yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n the_o same_o unchangeable_a and_o always_o equal_a to_o himself_o from_o who_o no_o variableness_n nor_o contradiction_n can_v proceed_v but_o if_o her_o adversary_n will_v examine_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o the_o manner_n he_o have_v do_v her_o write_n 8._o he_o will_v find_v many_o more_o such_o seem_a contradiction_n in_o the_o bible_n for_o indeed_o there_o be_v many_o more_o according_a to_o the_o narrow_a apprehension_n and_o shallow_a judgement_n of_o man_n who_o be_v earthly_a and_o carnal_a can_v understand_v spiritual_a thing_n or_o those_o indict_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o they_o forge_v in_o their_o little_a brain_n error_n out_o of_o most_o solid_a truth_n and_o contradiction_n out_o of_o the_o great_a conformity_n from_o hence_o have_v spring_v so_o many_o error_n schism_n and_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o every_o one_o will_v understand_v the_o scripture_n after_o their_o own_o mode_n they_o have_v invent_v so_o many_o different_a religion_n and_o each_o say_v this_o be_v found_v on_o the_o holy_a scripture_n though_o very_o often_o they_o have_v different_a sentiment_n and_o contradict_v one_o another_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n while_o every_o one_o think_v he_o understand_v they_o aright_o though_o they_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v divine_a thing_n for_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o indict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o and_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n undertake_v to_o do_v it_o he_o still_o fall_v from_o one_o error_n into_o another_o and_o lose_v himself_o in_o that_o great_a ocean_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o he_o can_v understand_v nor_o comprehend_v it_o do_v not_o trouble_v i_o that_o there_o appear_v to_o be_v contradiction_n in_o my_o write_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n since_o they_o will_v hardly_o find_v two_o prophet_n speak_v the_o same_o word_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o the_o four_o evangelist_n do_v not_o relate_v the_o same_o thing_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n must_v it_o therefore_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v contradiction_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o this_o benjamin_n furly_n say_v there_o be_v in_o my_o write_n god_n command_v to_o honour_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o jesus_n christ_n say_v we_o must_v hate_v father_n and_o mother_n add_v that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v his_o disciple_n how_o will_v this_o benjamin_n reconcile_v these_o two_o passage_n for_o to_o honour_v father_n and_o mother_n be_v a_o thing_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o hate_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o come_v to_o bring_v peace_n upon_o earth_n but_o war_n between_o father_n and_o son_n etc._n etc._n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v my_o peace_n i_o give_v you_o in_o one_o place_n he_o say_v drunkard_n and_o glutton_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o that_o which_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n do_v not_o defile_v the_o soul_n truth_n be_v invincible_a and_o do_v not_o change_n for_o all_o that_o may_v be_v thunder_v against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o more_o establish_v when_o it_o be_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v by_o ignorant_a person_n as_o this_o benjamin_n who_o can_v discern_v truth_n from_o lie_v and_o from_o contradiction_n he_o confound_v one_o time_n with_o another_o and_o will_v needs_o give_v general_a rule_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o occasion_n and_o when_o these_o rule_n be_v not_o punctual_o observe_v at_o all_o time_n he_o think_v that_o person_n do_v change_n or_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o live_v upon_o earth_n he_o will_v have_v often_o reprove_v he_o as_o at_o present_a he_o do_v i_o for_o when_o jesus_n christ_n be_v afraid_a of_o his_o enemy_n he_o bid_v his_o apostle_n buy_v sword_n and_o if_o they_o want_v money_n to_o do_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v sell_v their_o garment_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o command_v to_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n and_o threaten_v that_o he_o who_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n shall_v be_v strike_v by_o it_o if_o this_o benjamin_n have_v be_v in_o s._n peter_n place_n when_o he_o cut_v off_o malchus_n ear_n he_o will_v certain_o have_v be_v displease_v at_o jesus_n christ_n and_o blame_v he_o for_o inconstancy_n and_o contradiction_n because_o he_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o time_n when_o he_o ought_v to_o strike_v and_o when_o he_o ought_v to_o forbear_v he_o reproach_n i_o that_o i_o have_v write_v somewhere_o that_o i_o may_v say_v something_o that_o be_v not_o true_a without_o lie_v or_o sin_v he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v material_a lie_n which_o be_v not_o sin_n he_o will_v have_v word_n precise_o speak_v which_o be_v true_a according_a to_o his_o caprice_n for_o it_o be_v a_o chief_a article_n of_o the_o quaker_n to_o justify_v themselves_o before_o man_n for_o they_o study_v precise_a word_n that_o they_o may_v not_o commit_v a_o material_a lie_n and_o they_o dare_v not_o call_v a_o christian_a by_o that_o name_n without_o add_v as_o they_o call_v they_o fear_v to_o lie_v by_o call_v he_o a_o christian_a when_o he_o be_v not_o true_o such_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o far_o from_o these_o maxim_n for_o i_o never_o regard_v the_o pronunciation_n of_o word_n but_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o advance_v if_o i_o express_v they_o in_o this_o or_o that_o term_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o provide_v i_o deceive_v no_o body_n and_o that_o i_o make_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v which_o i_o will_v signify_v but_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v i_o and_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v that_o sect_n that_o they_o will_v be_v esteem_v by_o man_n for_o good_a man_n and_o for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n whereas_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v how_o they_o esteem_v i_o for_o i_o be_o content_a with_o the_o testimony_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n and_o seek_v not_o the_o approbation_n of_o man_n far_o less_o will_v i_o say_v any_o word_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v think_v that_o i_o be_o just_a and_o guide_v by_o god_n it_o suffice_v i_o that_o i_o know_v it_o and_o god_n know_v it_o for_o it_o be_v write_v he_o who_o will_v please_v man_n be_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o i_o will_v free_o speak_v a_o material_a lie_n when_o i_o believe_v the_o thing_n be_v true_a for_o example_n i_o have_v often_o say_v that_o i_o be_v two_o year_n young_a than_o i_o find_v i_o be_o since_o i_o cause_v one_o to_o search_v the_o register_n of_o my_o baptism_n i_o grant_v i_o have_v thus_o make_v many_o material_a lie_n yet_o without_o sin_v thereby_o or_o lie_v since_o a_o lie_n be_v a_o deceit_n or_o falseness_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o kill_v the_o soul_n which_o i_o can_v not_o do_v by_o say_v that_o i_o be_v two_o year_n young_a for_o i_o aim_v not_o thereby_o to_o deceive_v any_o body_n nor_o to_o speak_v against_o the_o truth_n i_o have_v utter_v many_o such_o material_a lie_n i_o love_v rather_o to_o possess_v the_o essence_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o soul_n than_o to_o speak_v verbal_o true_a word_n through_o hypocrisy_n for_o what_o else_o be_v it_o to_o call_v man_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o to_o add_v to_o it_o as_o they_o call_v they_o than_o hypocrisy_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o truth_n such_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v when_o they_o say_v to_o pilate_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o write_v on_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o add_v to_o it_o as_o he_o say_v which_o pilate_n will_v not_o add_v say_v only_o what_o be_v write_v be_v write_v as_o i_o also_o answer_v to_o this_o benjamin_n when_o he_o will_v teach_v i_o to_o speak_v word_n which_o be_v true_a before_o man_n for_o i_o know_v well_o that_o all_o who_o i_o call_v christian_n be_v not_o true_o christian_n before_o god_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o learn_v from_o the_o quaker_n to_o add_v to_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a as_o they_o call_v they_o since_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o superfluous_a and_o i_o have_v no_o other_o intention_n in_o call_v they_o simple_o christian_n but_o to_o make_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o who_o i_o speak_v to_o wit_n that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o jew_n or_o heathen_n but_o of_o those_o only_o who_o i_o call_v christian_n yet_o without_o design_n to_o maintain_v that_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n since_o i_o declare_v elsewhere_o that_o i_o
they_o believe_v they_o be_v good_a christian_n though_o real_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v not_o one_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o instead_o of_o love_a poverty_n they_o love_v the_o wealth_n of_o this_o world_n instead_o of_o love_a suffering_n they_o love_v their_o pleasure_n their_o ease_n and_o their_o contentment_n and_o instead_o of_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v despise_v they_o desire_v to_o be_v honour_v 5._o and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o in_o l'antichrist_n decouvert_v a._n b._n have_v make_v appear_v beyond_o all_o exception_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n prevail_v among_o all_o the_o party_n of_o christendom_n and_o that_o thereby_o the_o devil_n have_v with_o more_o cunning_a and_o more_o irreclaimable_o possess_v man_n with_o his_o spirit_n and_o especial_o the_o well-meaning_n so_o that_o the_o harlot_n and_o open_o wicked_a will_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n soon_o than_o they_o because_o their_o wickedness_n be_v manifest_a they_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n more_o ready_o convert_v whereas_o in_o these_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v convert_v with_o the_o mask_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o still_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v real_o act_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n 12._o that_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o christendom_n proceed_v from_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o its_o guide_n and_o pastor_n evil._n be_v but_o too_o evident_a to_o be_v deny_v and_o the_o evil_n be_v more_o sad_a and_o irremedible_a that_o they_o can_v endure_v to_o have_v it_o tell_v they_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o other_o state_n of_o christendom_n may_v be_v speak_v of_o without_o exciting_a so_o much_o of_o man_n indignation_n but_o if_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v touch_v a_o man_n must_v look_v for_o nothing_o but_o rage_n and_o resentment_n this_o can_v be_v speak_v of_o but_o present_o it_o be_v a_o combination_n against_o the_o priesthood_n as_o our_o lord_n be_v accuse_v as_o design_v to_o destroy_v the_o law_n because_o he_o expose_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n all_o protestant_n do_v general_o grant_v that_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o christendom_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v chief_o owe_v to_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o its_o clergy_n and_o we_o be_v as_o far_o from_o true_a christianity_n now_o as_o former_o there_o be_v ground_n to_o think_v the_o matter_n be_v not_o much_o mend_v we_o see_v what_o a_o strange_a change_n the_o holy_a life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o a_o few_o simple_a man_n wrought_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o many_o thousand_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o how_o little_a be_v to_o be_v see_v of_o this_o now_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n be_v not_o because_o of_o their_o work_a miracle_n for_o these_o serve_v only_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v once_o confirm_v there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n of_o they_o but_o they_o be_v as_o effectual_a in_o all_o after-age_n to_o those_o who_o be_v firm_o persuade_v of_o they_o so_o that_o to_o such_o as_o think_v they_o will_v be_v better_v if_o they_o see_v such_o miracle_n be_v applicable_a that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o believe_v not_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v persuade_v though_o one_o shall_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a neither_o can_v this_o difference_n be_v impute_v to_o the_o great_a prevalence_n of_o wickedness_n now_o the_o world_n be_v high_o corrupt_v also_o at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o to_o no_o small_a degree_n it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v then_o to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v animate_v from_o that_o by_o which_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o general_o lead_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n be_v not_o know_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o where_o god_n find_v pure_a and_o selfdenied_n soul_n he_o delight_v to_o communicate_v himself_o to_o they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o the_o organ_n of_o convey_v his_o light_n and_o spirit_n unto_o other_o who_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o receive_v it_o immediate_o themselves_o man_n mind_n be_v general_o so_o extravert_v and_o turn_v towards_o sensible_a thing_n that_o they_o can_v be_v affect_v with_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n unless_o they_o be_v convey_v to_o they_o by_o mean_n that_o may_v affect_v their_o sense_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a necessity_n and_o usefulness_n of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o man_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n and_o when_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n he_o send_v the_o comforter_n who_o lead_v his_o apostle_n into_o all_o truth_n and_o by_o their_o mean_n convey_v the_o same_o light_n and_o the_o same_o spirit_n into_o other_o and_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o they_o who_o speak_v and_o act_v as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o they_o and_o there_o their_o doctrine_n and_o life_n have_v a_o wonderful_a effect_n in_o the_o convert_v of_o other_o even_o as_o one_o flame_n kindle_v another_o they_o have_v a_o live_n not_o a_o dead_a and_o barren_a knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n their_o fervent_a charity_n do_v animate_v all_o their_o word_n and_o action_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o impossible_a to_o such_o a_o faith_n and_o such_o a_o charity_n this_o make_v they_o pray_v fervent_o to_o god_n for_o his_o divine_a grace_n to_o other_o and_o he_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o request_n of_o such_o ardent_a charity_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n increase_a the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o their_o prayer_n and_o labour_n do_v inseparable_o join_v his_o powerful_a operation_n to_o awaken_v convert_v and_o purify_v the_o heart_n of_o other_o 3_o this_o make_v st._n paul_n say_v when_o you_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o effectual_o work_v also_o in_o you_o that_o believe_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o you_o be_v manifest_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o christ_n manifest_v by_o we_o write_v not_o with_o ink_n but_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o live_a god_n not_o in_o table_n of_o stone_n but_o in_o fleshly_a table_n of_o the_o heart_n this_o wrought_v the_o conversion_n at_o one_o time_n of_o 3000_o and_o again_o of_o 5000_o at_o one_o sermon_n of_o st._n peter_n this_o make_v the_o officer_n who_o be_v send_v to_o apprehend_v jesus_n christ_n say_v never_o man_n speak_v like_o this_o and_o the_o evangelist_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v preach_v that_o he_o teach_v as_o one_o have_v authority_n and_o not_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o they_o be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n for_o his_o word_n be_v with_o power_n or_o to_o speak_v with_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o be_v they_o make_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v feel_v in_o the_o heart_n moreover_o they_o teach_v man_n by_o their_o deed_n as_o well_o as_o their_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o their_o life_n and_o their_o abstraction_n from_o all_o earthly_a thing_n do_v procure_v belief_n to_o all_o they_o say_v and_o let_v the_o world_n see_v that_o they_o bid_v other_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o firm_o believe_v and_o hearty_o set_v about_o themselves_o so_o that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sound_a when_o to_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v require_v only_o to_o embrace_v a_o evangelical_n life_n and_o to_o give_v evidence_n of_o the_o sincere_a love_n they_o bear_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o wicked_a and_o worldly_a man_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n 9_o and_o their_o number_n increase_v they_o get_v themselves_o in_o to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o it_o then_o under_o a_o outward_a cover_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n man_n be_v turn_v away_o from_o a_o evangelical_n life_n and_o lead_v to_o damnation_n then_o the_o pastoral_n office_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o trade_n whereby_o man_n may_v gain_v honour_n or_o greatness_n or_o wealth_n in_o the_o world_n or_o at_o least_o their_o live_n then_o man_n fit_v themselves_o for_o the_o pastoral_n office_n not_o by_o humility_n and_o purity_n of_o heart_n but_o by_o study_n and_o learning_n then_o the_o pastor_n become_v general_o void_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o true_a and_o live_a knowledge_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o
roman_a church_n who_o do_v as_o your_o preacher_n and_o say_v that_o i_o be_o become_v a_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o will_v think_v they_o do_v god_n good_a service_n to_o take_v away_o my_o life_n and_o have_v even_o watch_v divers_a occasion_n to_o murder_v i_o which_o god_n discover_v to_o i_o timous_o that_o i_o may_v avoid_v they_o and_o if_o i_o will_v yet_o go_v to_o their_o church_n i_o think_v i_o shall_v not_o come_v out_o alive_a but_o they_o will_v stone_n i_o as_o they_o do_v s._n stephen_n for_o have_v speak_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v not_o permit_v i_o to_o go_v to_o another_o without_o sin_v mortal_o according_a to_o their_o ordinance_n so_o that_o by_o force_n i_o must_v stay_v in_o solitude_n and_o not_o go_v to_o church_n which_o i_o suffer_v willing_o and_o comfort_v myself_o that_o so_o many_o father_n hermit_n be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o god_n while_o they_o live_v in_o the_o desert_n and_o do_v not_o use_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o other_o outward_a solemnity_n and_o in_o her_o forecited_a letter_n to_o mr._n reinboth_n 75._o as_o to_o what_o you_o tell_v i_o say_v she_o that_o you_o wish_v i_o have_v not_o touch_v the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n i_o can_v not_o omit_v it_o since_o for_o they_o particular_o that_o work_n be_v make_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o they_o ought_v all_o to_o thank_v god_n that_o he_o have_v permit_v their_o fault_n to_o be_v know_v that_o they_o may_v amend_v they_o while_o they_o be_v yet_o in_o this_o world_n but_o in_o order_n to_o this_o they_o must_v real_o desire_v to_o become_v true_a christian_n such_o as_o i_o have_v describe_v they_o for_o otherwise_o they_o will_v take_v god_n admonition_n for_o the_o reproof_n of_o a_o wife_n which_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v i_o pardon_v they_o for_o they_o do_v it_o out_o of_o ignorance_n think_v these_o be_v novelty_n though_o they_o be_v the_o ancient_a truth_n of_o god_n but_o a_o little_a grievous_a to_o those_o who_o live_v according_a to_o the_o motion_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n for_o it_o will_v always_o bear_v rule_n be_v praise_v and_o esteem_v and_o can_v endure_v reproof_n nor_o bear_v its_o fault_n without_o take_v the_o alarm_n or_o avenge_a itself_o oppose_v still_o the_o truth_n that_o reprove_v it_o and_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v its_o fault_n this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n who_o have_v not_o yet_o overcome_v himself_o in_o which_o your_o pastor_n seem_v yet_o to_o be_v fix_v since_o they_o will_v blame_v i_o for_o speak_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n of_o which_o too_o much_o can_v be_v speak_v and_o they_o themselves_o ought_v to_o publish_v it_o if_o they_o be_v free_a of_o passion_n and_o regard_v more_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n but_o impartial_a and_o disintere_v person_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o every_o one_o look_n to_o his_o own_o advantage_n his_o own_o glory_n and_o profit_n and_o when_o they_o be_v in_o this_o state_n i_o need_v not_o wonder_v if_o your_o pastor_n blame_v i_o since_o i_o bring_v they_o no_o profit_n advantage_n or_o vain-glory._n this_o be_v not_o that_o i_o will_v not_o honour_v or_o prefer_v churchman_n in_o their_o dignity_n since_o i_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o god_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v sufficient_o in_o the_o advertisement_n against_o the_o quaker_n for_o i_o always_o distinguish_v the_o state_n from_o the_o person_n i_o honour_v priest_n magistrate_n judge_n and_o other_o superior_n because_o god_n have_v establish_v this_o order_n upon_o earth_n without_o which_o man_n will_v be_v much_o more_o disorderly_a but_o i_o can_v honour_v the_o fault_n of_o all_o those_o person_n who_o be_v place_v in_o state_n and_o dignity_n since_o they_o seem_v to_o i_o more_o heinous_a in_o such_o than_o in_o the_o common_a people_n and_o i_o remark_n that_o jesus_n christ_n despise_v wicked_a priest_n and_o judge_n more_o than_o he_o do_v private_a sinner_n for_o he_o dismiss_v the_o woman_n take_v in_o adultery_n say_v only_o to_o she_o go_v and_o sin_n no_o more_o he_o call_v a_o usurer_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n he_o suffer_v a_o magdalen_n a_o common_a sinner_n to_o kiss_v and_o follow_v he_o but_o he_o do_v not_o so_o treat_v the_o pharisaical_a priest_n or_o judge_n and_o superior_n but_o give_v they_o public_o many_o reproach_n and_o contempt_n call_v they_o so_o often_o hypocrite_n white_v sepulcher_n generation_n of_o viper_n and_o say_v they_o make_v clean_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o platter_n but_o within_o be_v full_a of_o corruption_n and_o dead_a man_n bone_n and_o if_o you_o have_v live_v sir_n in_o the_o time_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o hear_v he_o thus_o despise_v and_o condemn_v the_o priest_n and_o superior_n you_o will_v have_v take_v offence_n that_o he_o blame_v so_o particular_o the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n since_o you_o take_v offence_n now_o that_o i_o blame_v the_o fault_n which_o god_n have_v make_v know_v to_o be_v universal_o in_o that_o state_n and_o if_o you_o believe_v there_o be_v among_o other_o some_o good_a man_n who_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o fault_n that_o i_o have_v mark_v in_o that_o light_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v not_o of_o they_o that_o i_o speak_v since_o i_o will_v not_o blame_v the_o office_n in_o itself_o see_v god_n have_v establish_v it_o and_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o honour_v it_o even_o in_o wicked_a person_n who_o he_o reprove_v for_o many_o fault_n for_o after_o he_o have_v heal_v the_o leper_n he_o command_v he_o to_o go_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v to_o a_o holy_a priest_n since_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o synagogue_n with_o those_o who_o out_o of_o envy_n crucify_v jesus_n christ_n but_o he_o will_v teach_v the_o respect_n and_o honour_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o priestly_a dignity_n though_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o person_n place_v in_o that_o dignity_n be_v much_o more_o displease_v to_o god_n than_o the_o vice_n of_o other_o and_o they_o will_v certain_o be_v more_o punish_v in_o hell_n for_o their_o dignity_n and_o office_n which_o they_o have_v unworthy_o discharge_v therefore_o i_o have_v more_o ground_n to_o touch_v the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n than_o any_o other_o on_o that_o occasion_n when_o i_o be_v converse_v with_o ecclesiastic_a person_n for_o it_o will_v not_o have_v touch_v they_o so_o near_o to_o have_v speak_v to_o they_o of_o the_o deplorable_a state_n in_o which_o lawyer_n merchant_n physician_n and_o other_o secular_a person_n do_v now_o live_v since_o the_o vice_n of_o other_o can_v not_o be_v correct_v by_o those_o churchman_n and_o they_o may_v well_o correct_v their_o own_o vice_n which_o i_o discover_v to_o they_o to_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n for_o they_o must_v account_v for_o this_o before_o the_o great_a judge_n i_o never_o repent_v of_o have_v touch_v on_o that_o occasion_n the_o ecclesiastic_a state_n since_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o christendom_n for_o if_o the_o priest_n have_v continue_v true_a christian_n and_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n undoubted_o they_o will_v yet_o draw_v to_o that_o state_n of_o christianity_n a_o great_a number_n of_o people_n after_o they_o but_o when_o we_o see_v the_o head_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n degenerate_a from_o that_o spirit_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v their_o degeneracy_n speak_v of_o what_o can_v be_v hope_v for_o from_o the_o people_n but_o that_o they_o will_v become_v still_o worse_o as_o experience_n make_v appear_v etc._n etc._n thus_o it_o appear_v how_o far_o she_o be_v from_o overturning_a or_o despise_a priesthood_n and_o the_o outward_a ordinance_n how_o plain_o she_o distinguish_v the_o office_n and_o dignity_n from_o the_o person_n the_o use_n of_o divine_a thing_n from_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o and_o that_o she_o as_o much_o honour_v the_o former_a as_o she_o expose_v the_o evil_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o why_o it_o be_v the_o churchman_n on_o all_o side_n raise_v such_o a_o hue-and-cry_a against_o she_o i_o design_v once_o to_o have_v set_v down_o here_o her_o execellent_a vindication_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o outward_a ordinance_n and_o the_o dignity_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o quaker_n in_o her_o advertisement_n against_o they_o but_o lest_o it_o shall_v make_v this_o paper_n swell_v too_o much_o i_o have_v forbear_v it_o xxi_o scripture_n they_o accuse_v she_o that_o she_o reject_v and_o despise_v the_o holy_a scripture_n from_o which_o she_o vindicate_v herself_o in_o many_o
know_v no_o true_a christian_n it_o can_v be_v understand_v that_o i_o know_v they_o for_o true_a christian_n because_o i_o call_v they_o by_o that_o name_n but_o i_o conform_v myself_o in_o this_o to_o the_o disposition_n of_o those_o who_o hear_v i_o and_o not_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o be_v which_o if_o i_o will_v follow_v i_o behove_v sometime_o to_o call_v those_o nominal_a christian_n atheist_n or_o antichristian_o which_o scarce_o any_o man_n will_v understand_v therefore_o to_o make_v myself_o be_v understand_v i_o must_v use_v common_a and_o ordinary_a term_n and_o pronounce_v they_o as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v since_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o every_o idle_a word_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o add_v useless_o to_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n as_o they_o call_v they_o since_o it_o be_v understand_v well_o enough_o of_o itself_o without_o pronounce_v those_o word_n as_o the_o quaker_n do_v to_o make_v appear_v how_o full_o she_o clear_v herself_o as_o to_o contradiction_n which_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o impute_v to_o she_o i_o shall_v here_o adduce_v one_o instance_n etc._n i_o understand_v say_v she_o by_o you_o that_o my_o write_n have_v have_v some_o good_a operation_n in_o your_o soul_n but_o withal_o that_o you_o have_v find_v as_o it_o seem_v to_o you_o some_o contradiction_n in_o they_o in_o that_o i_o say_v absolute_o that_o to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a one_o must_v abandon_v all_o that_o he_o possess_v and_o nevertheless_o you_o find_v in_o one_o of_o my_o letter_n that_o a_o man_n must_v keep_v his_o good_n for_o his_o necessity_n since_o the_o world_n be_v now_o without_o charity_n and_o they_o will_v leave_v the_o just_a without_o help_n in_o his_o need_n both_o these_o thing_n be_v most_o true_a and_o do_v not_o at_o all_o contradict_v one_o another_o for_o a_o man_n must_v absolute_o abandon_v the_o love_n of_o earthly_a good_n if_o he_o will_v become_v a_o true_a christian_a jesus_n christ_n have_v very_o often_o affirm_v this_o truth_n in_o his_o gospel_n and_o say_v that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o renounce_v all_o that_o he_o possess_v can_v be_v his_o disciple_n i_o bring_v no_o novelty_n when_o through_o all_o my_o write_n i_o press_v this_o necessity_n of_o forsake_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n since_o jesus_n christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o all_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o truth_n which_o be_v god_n which_o say_v through_o all_o the_o same_o thing_n so_o that_o they_o who_o speak_v otherwise_o be_v liar_n and_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n who_o flatter_v man_n to_o destroy_v they_o under_o the_o pretext_n of_o gloss_n and_o false_a reason_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o any_o ground_n this_o i_o have_v declare_v sufficient_o in_o my_o write_n as_o you_o have_v well_o observe_v and_o approve_v as_o you_o say_v see_v i_o very_o much_o blame_v a_o woman_n of_o friesland_n who_o be_v yet_o careful_a what_o she_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o wherewithal_o she_o shall_v be_v clothe_v after_o she_o have_v resolve_v to_o become_v a_o true_a christian_a as_o you_o have_v remark_v in_o the_o second_o letter_n of_o the_o four_o part_n of_o la_fw-fr lum_n née_fw-fr en_fw-fr tenebres_fw-fr and_o i_o be_o still_o of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n that_o when_o one_o rely_v upon_o temporal_a thing_n and_o will_v not_o voluntary_o abandon_v they_o to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n he_o can_v be_v his_o disciple_n and_o that_o woman_n will_v never_o be_v one_o so_o long_o as_o she_o be_v not_o disengage_v from_o temporal_a good_n though_o she_o be_v now_o go_v out_o of_o her_o country_n with_o a_o design_n to_o embrace_v a_o gospel_n life_n she_o can_v attain_v to_o it_o because_o of_o the_o affection_n she_o have_v still_o for_o her_o ease_n and_o convenience_n which_o proceed_v from_o self-love_n be_v anxious_a for_o the_o temporal_a part_n and_o fear_v want_n and_o i_o can_v assure_v all_o those_o who_o be_v still_o in_o that_o disposition_n that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n but_o when_o i_o write_v to_o one_o of_o my_o friend_n in_o the_o 24_o letter_n of_o the_o four_o part_n of_o la_fw-fr lum_n née_fw-fr en_fw-fr tenebr_fw-fr as_o you_o allege_v that_o he_o ●ought_v to_o keep_v his_o good_n for_o his_o own_o necessity_n or_o that_o of_o other_o without_o leave_v they_o to_o his_o friend_n or_o give_v they_o to_o the_o poor_a now_o adays_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o do_v it_o because_o this_o man_n be_v more_o disengage_v in_o his_o soul_n from_o temporal_a wealth_n than_o that_o woman_n and_o have_v already_o resolve_v to_o abandon_v they_o all_o so_o that_o his_o heart_n be_v free_a to_o possess_v they_o as_o if_o he_o do_v not_o possess_v they_o which_o a_o person_n wed_v to_o they_o can_v not_o do_v though_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o he_o can_v and_o he_o will_v say_v so_o with_o his_o mouth_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o deceitful_a than_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n which_o none_o know_v but_o god_n and_o he_o to_o who_o god_n reveal_v it_o and_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o advise_v this_o man_n to_o keep_v his_o good_n and_o that_o woman_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o care_v for_o the_o morrow_n without_o any_o contradiction_n in_o my_o advice_n but_o in_o the_o disposition_n of_o those_o two_o person_n who_o you_o mention_v since_o the_o one_o be_v free_a to_o possess_v wealth_n without_o sin_v and_o not_o the_o other_o and_o a_o good_a physician_n ought_v always_o to_o consider_v the_o original_a of_o his_o patient_n disease_n if_o he_o will_v heal_v he_o for_o if_o he_o ordain_v the_o same_o physic_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o malady_n he_o will_v kill_v more_o than_o all_o the_o executioner_n together_o so_o you_o must_v not_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n in_o my_o two_o letter_n mention_v by_o you_o but_o that_o there_o be_v two_o divers_a remedy_n for_o two_o different_a disease_n to_o wit_n one_o remedy_n against_o the_o love_n or_o desire_v of_o earthly_a thing_n and_o another_o against_o too_o great_a liberality_n or_o indiscretion_n again_o a._n b._n say_v somewhere_o that_o no_o body_n ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o some_o page_n after_o in_o the_o same_o treatise_n she_o say_v that_o no_o body_n can_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o another_o this_o seem_v contradictory_n as_o well_o as_o those_o two_o proposition_n the_o one_o of_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o of_o st._n james_n man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o this_o last_o contradiction_n ●s_v reconcile_v by_o say_v that_o st._n paul_n understand_v that_o the_o principle_n which_o admit_v in_o we_o that_o true_a righteousness_n which_o god_n place_v there_o be_v faith_n and_o that_o work_v be_v not_o that_o principle_n but_o st._n james_n mean_v that_o that_o principle_n which_o admit_v in_o we_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v faith_n but_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o destitute_a of_o work_n for_o if_o faith_n be_v without_o work_n it_o be_v a_o dead_a faith_n which_o will_v justify_v no_o body_n thus_o these_o have_v no_o contradiction_n and_o yet_o be_v hard_a to_o reconcile_v than_o any_o passage_n of_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n thus_o as_o to_o the_o forecited_a passage_n when_o she_o say_v that_o no_o body_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n her_o meaning_n be_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o author_n and_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n who_o will_v accept_v of_o this_o salvation_n by_o the_o way_n that_o god_n teach_v they_o and_o when_o she_o say_v that_o no_o body_n can_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o another_o this_o signify_v that_o none_o who_o will_v not_o cooperate_v to_o their_o salvation_n by_o the_o way_n that_o god_n prescribe_v they_o c●n_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o that_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o save_v those_o who_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n thus_o you_o see_v how_o easy_a it_o be_v for_o critical_a and_o captious_a spirit_n to_o find_v contradiction_n where_o there_o be_v none_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o have_v many_o seem_a contradiction_n though_o none_o in_o truth_n that_o they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n write_v in_o great_a simplicity_n regard_v the_o essence_n and_o substance_n of_o divine_a truth_n and_o not_o the_o niceness_n of_o term_n and_o how_o captious_a spirit_n may_v misinterpret_v they_o and_o divine_a truth_n have_v need_v to_o be_v read_v and_o
or_o where_o he_o speak_v more_o mysterious_o as_o well_o know_v that_o he_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n they_o who_o come_v then_o to_o consider_v these_o write_n with_o a_o single_a eye_n with_o a_o sincere_a desire_n to_o understand_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o do_v the_o same_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o whether_o she_o speak_v of_o herself_o v._o apology_n in_o write_v this_o apology_n we_o shall_v give_v one_a a_o abstract_n of_o her_o sentiment_n and_o character_n of_o her_o write_n 2d_o some_o of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a prejudices_fw-la raise_v against_o she_o and_o her_o answer_n to_o they_o 3d._a the_o evidence_n she_o give_v of_o she_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o her_o answer_n to_o the_o prejudices_fw-la oppose_v thereunto_o most_o of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o late_a raise_v against_o she_o be_v such_o as_o be_v object_v to_o she_o in_o her_o own_o life-time_n i_o choose_v to_o give_v she_o own_o defence_n which_o upon_o many_o account_n i_o judge_v will_v be_v more_o acceptable_a than_o what_o i_o may_v offer_v to_o say_v for_o she_o four_o a_o abstract_n of_o her_o life_n unto_o which_o shall_v be_v subjoin_v some_o of_o her_o letter_n which_o will_v both_o serve_v far_a to_o vindicate_v she_o from_o the_o calumny_n raise_v against_o she_o and_o may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o these_o who_o do_v sincere_o love_v the_o truth_n and_o desire_v the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o all_o such_o i_o hope_v this_o will_v not_o be_v unacceptable_a there_o be_v nothing_o aim_v at_o but_o to_o make_v we_o all_o lay_n to_o heart_n this_o great_a truth_n civitates_fw-la dvas_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la amores_fw-la duo_fw-la civitatem_fw-la mundi_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o babilonia_n dicitur_fw-la amor_fw-la svi_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la contemptum_fw-la dei_fw-la civitatem_fw-la dei_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o jerusalem_n dicitur_fw-la amor_fw-la dei_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la contemptum_fw-la svi_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la errata_fw-la page_n 6._o line_n 26._o for_o have_v read_v have_v p._n 7._o l._n 4._o for_o do_v r._n di●_n ibid._n l._n 25._o and_o 26._o into_o r._n in_o p._n 9_o l._n 42._o the_o r._n they_o p._n 15._o l._n 23._o love_n r._n live_v p._n 16._o l._n 20._o there_o r._n the._n p._n 24._o l._n 39_o deal_n to_o p._n 28._o l._n 20._o after_o people_n r._n teach_v ibid._n l._n 28_o blot_n out_o be_v p._n 29._o l._n 8_o after_o not_o r._n from_o p._n 35_o l._n 37._o he_o r._n she_o p._n 39_o l._n 15._o he_o r._n they_o p._n 41_o l._n 29._o since_o after_z r._n thereafter_o ibid._n blot_v out_o have_v p._n 45._o l._n 42._o after_o with_o r._n a_o p._n 46._o l._n 28._o after_o they_o r._n and_o that_o p._n 51._o l._n 38._o his_fw-la by_o r._n by_o he_o p._n 56._o l._n 3._o as_o r._n 〈◊〉_d p_o 64._o l._n 6._o not_o r._n none_o ibid._n l_o 28_o after_o make_v r._n appear_v p._n 68_o l._n 14._o convert_v r._n cover_v p._n 69._o l._n 25._o there_o r._n then_o p._n 73._o l._n 9_o and_o r._n of_o p._n 74._o l._n 30._o there_o r._n their_o p._n 78._o l._n 23._o after_o it_o r._n be_v ibid._n l_o 27._o though_o r._n that_o p._n 80._o l._n 39_o after_o do_v r._n god_n p._n 84_o l._n 21._o that_o r._n but_o p._n 101_o l._n ●6_n 〈◊〉_d to_o it_o p._n 1●2_n l._n 33._o blot_n out_o only_o p._n 1._o 3._o l._n 18_o ●_o minuendam_fw-la ibid._n l._n 35._o nutri_fw-la r._n neutri_fw-la p._n 1●8_n l._n 19_o 2._o presence_n r._n prescience_n p._n 113._o l._n 32_o r._n fatereris_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 34._o r._n nocendum_fw-la ibid._n 43._o r._n divinitus_fw-la p._n 114._o l._n 〈◊〉_d iruendum_fw-la p._n 120._o l._n 27._o after_o these_o r._n say_v she_o p._n 120._o l._n 〈◊〉_d great_a r._n so_o p._n 13._o l._n 31_o after_o and_o r._n lay_v p._n 134._o l._n 2d_o after●ccasion_n ●ccasion_z r._n to_o show_v p._n 135._o l._n 18._o for_o that_o o_o r._n o_o that_o p._n 38._o l._n 8._o after_o withdraw_v r._n from_o p._n 144_o l._n 13._o of_o r._n if_o p._n 152._o l._n 12._o consultation_n r._n conclusious_a l._n 19_o love_a r._n live_v l._n 37_o object_n r._n object_n p._n 190._o l._n 1._o he_o r._n they_o ibid._n l._n 39_o deal_n upon_o p._n 192_o l._n 18._o his_o r._n this_o l._n 40._o his_fw-la r._n this_o p._n 217._o l._n 41._o spiri_fw-la r._n spirit_n p._n 213._o l._n 5._o inferior_a r._n superior_a p._n 230._o l._n 36._o blot_n out_o or_o condition_n p._n 239._o l._n 6._o epaphirus_n r._n epaphroditus_n ibid._n ●mar_n for_o tit._n 4._o 20_o r._n 2._o tim._n 4._o 20_o p._n 244._o l._n 39_o such_o r._n how_o p._n 247._o l._n 31._o have_v r._n have_v p._n 256._o l._n 33._o declare_v r._n declare_v p._n 257._o l._n 37._o for_o have_v r._n have_v p._n 271._o l._n 39_o you_o r._n yet_o p._n 273._o l._n 9_o pleae_v r._n please_v ibid._n l._n 11._o smoke_n r._n smoak_n p._n 277._o l._n 9_o blot_n out_o to_o p._n 279._o l._n 42._o substance_n r._n subsistence_n p._n 292._o l._n 28._o ally_v r._n ally_n p._n 295._o l._n 9_o coriathe_v r._n coriache_n p._n 296._o l._n 29._o rufus_n r._n refuse_v p._n 307_o l._n 39_o liquitale_fw-it r._n liquidate_n p._n 317._o l._n 19_o fundamental_o r._n fraudulent_o p._n 325._o l._n 32._o after_o to_o r._n be_v p._n 327._o l._n 25._o with_o it_o r._n it_o with_o p._n 3●9_n l._n 35._o after_o she_o r._n do_v p._n 331._o l._n 33_o d●ust●uction_n r._n distraction_n p._n 334._o l._n 27._o in_o r._n through_o p._n 336._o l._n 21_o after_o consider_v r._n they_o p._n 352._o l._n 35._o blot_v our_o to_z p._n 353._o l._n 4_o man_n all_o r._n all_o men._n p._n 355._o l._n 23._o pussiman_n r._n pijssimam_fw-la p._n 358_o l._n 14_o narrater_fw-la r._n narrator_n p._n 361_o l._n 11._o for_o r._n far_o p._n 374._o l._n 4_o of_o he_o r._n of_o this_o p._n 379._o l._n 12._o and_o r._n of_o p_o 383._o l_o 24._o so_o though_o l._n so_o that_o p._n 384_o l._n 23_o and_o 24_o corinthus_n r._n cerinthus_n p._n 39_o l_o 31._o insecti_fw-la r_o infecti_fw-la ibid._n l._n 34._o initi_fw-la r._n miti_fw-la p._n 394._o l._n 24._o flatering_n ●_o flatter_a l._n 28._o for_o be_v almost_o bring_v in_o o_o ●_o bend_v almost_o into_o advertisement_n two_o of_o mrs._n a._n b_n treatise_n do_v into_o english_a viz._n solid_a virtue_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n maybe_o have_v at_o the_o same_o place_n where_o this_o be_v a_o apology_n for_o m._n a._n bourignon_fw-fr part_n i._o a_o abstract_n of_o her_o sentiment_n and_o character_n of_o her_o write_n i._o it_o men_n be_v general_o lead_v to_o take_v a_o estimate_n of_o sentiment_n and_o write_n from_o the_o opinion_n they_o have_v conceive_v of_o the_o person_n who_o communicate_v they_o and_o that_o ground_a upon_o circumstance_n which_o have_v no_o necessary_a connexion_n with_o truth_n or_o error_n the_o poor_a man_n wisdom_n be_v despise_v and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o have_v come_v from_o a_o scribe_n or_o pharisee_n his_o countryman_n will_v have_v receive_v both_o he_o and_o they_o but_o because_o they_o know_v his_o extract_n the_o meanness_n of_o his_o education_n that_o he_o have_v no_o learning_n and_o that_o the_o learned_a have_v no_o regard_n for_o he_o therefore_o they_o despiss_v he_o 55._o have_v any_o of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n believe_v on_o he_o be_v not_o this_o the_o carpenter_n son_n be_v not_o his_o mother_n call_v mary_n and_o his_o brethren_n and_o his_o sister_n be_v they_o not_o all_o with_o we_o whence_o then_o have_v this_o man_n all_o these_o thing_n and_o they_o be_v offend_v in_o he_o ii_o otherwise_o thus_o have_v the_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n be_v the_o product_n of_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n or_o even_o of_o some_o learned_a head_n in_o this_o age_n they_o will_v have_v meet_v with_o regard_n but_o because_o they_o come_v from_o a_o woman_n void_a of_o all_o humane_a learning_n and_o declare_v that_o she_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n they_o be_v entertain_v with_o contempt_n and_o scorn_n and_o instead_o of_o weigh_v the_o sentiment_n themselves_o prejudices_fw-la be_v first_o heap_v together_o to_o disparage_v her_o person_n and_o thereby_o to_o breed_v a_o aversion_n against_o any_o thing_n she_o can_v say_v though_o never_o so_o true_a and_o useful_a this_o be_v very_o far_o from_o the_o excellent_a advice_n give_v we_o by_o tho._n a_o kemp._n of_o the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n book_n 1_o chap._n 5._o sect._n 2._o which_o i_o wish_v we_o may_v all_o follow_v let_v not_o say_v he_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o writer_n offend_v thou_o whether_o his_o learning_n be_v
run_v through_o all_o that_o divine_a book_n of_o thomas_n à_fw-fr kempis_n 4●_n of_o the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n lo_o here_o a_o extract_v of_o one_o chapter_n where_o jesus_n christ_n thus_o speak_v to_o the_o soul_n son_n let_v not_o the_o fine_a and_o subtle_a say_n of_o man_n move_v thou_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n take_v heed_n to_o my_o word_n which_o do_v inflame_v the_o heart_n and_o enlighten_v the_o mind_n which_o bring_v compunction_n and_o procure_v various_a consolation_n never_o read_v my_o word_n for_o this_o end_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v esteem_v the_o more_o learned_a or_o the_o more_o wise_a but_o study_v the_o mortification_n of_o thy_o vice_n for_o that_o will_v profit_v thou_o more_o than_o many_o hard_a question_n when_o thou_o have_v read_v and_o know_v much_o thou_o must_v still_o return_v to_o one_o principle_n i_o be_o he_o who_o teach_v man_n knowledge_n and_o give_v to_o little_a one_o a_o more_o clear_a understanding_n than_o what_o he_o can_v be_v teach_v by_o man._n he_o to_o who_o i_o speak_v will_v soon_o be_v wise_a and_o will_v profit_v much_o in_o spirit_n wo_n to_o they_o that_o inquire_v many_o curious_a thing_n from_o man_n and_o care_v little_a how_o to_o serve_v i_o i_o be_o he_o who_o elevate_v the_o humble_a mind_n in_o a_o moment_n that_o it_o may_v conceive_v more_o reason_n of_o the_o eternal_a truth_n than_o if_o one_o study_v for_o ten_o year_n in_o the_o school_n i_o teach_v without_o the_o noise_n of_o word_n without_o the_o confusion_n of_o opinion_n without_o the_o vanity_n of_o honour_n without_o the_o debate_n of_o argument_n i_o be_o he_o who_o teach_v to_o despise_v earthly_a thing_n to_o loathe_v present_a thing_n to_o seek_v and_o relish_v eternal_a thing_n to_o flee_v honour_n to_o suffer_v reproach_n to_o place_v all_o their_o hope_n in_o i_o to_o desire_v nothing_o beside_o i_o and_o to_o love_v i_o ardent_o above_o all_o thing_n for_o a_o certain_a person_n by_o love_v i_o dear_o do_v learn_v divine_a thing_n and_o speak_v wonderful_a thing_n he_o profit_v more_o by_o forsake_v all_o than_o by_o study_v difficult_a thing_n but_o to_o some_o i_o utter_v common_a thing_n to_o some_o special_a one_o to_o some_o i_o appear_v sweet_o in_o sign_n and_o figure_n but_o to_o other_o i_o reveal_v mystery_n in_o much_o light_n there_o be_v one_o voice_n of_o book_n but_o it_o do_v not_o equal_o instruct_v all_o for_o i_o be_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n inward_o the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o understander_n of_o the_o thought_n the_o furtherer_n of_o action_n distribute_v to_o every_o one_o as_o i_o shall_v judge_v worthy_a now_o write_n who_o chief_a tendency_n be_v to_o lead_v we_o to_o so_o excellent_a a_o master_n to_o learn_v in_o christ_n school_n and_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o labour_v for_o the_o disposition_n which_o he_o himself_o require_v of_o we_o deserve_v to_o meet_v with_o some_o regard_n by_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v his_o disciple_n xxiii_o they_o 8._o another_o remarkable_a quality_n of_o those_o write_n be_v that_o they_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o plain_a and_o simple_a the_o thought_n of_o the_o studious_a and_o of_o the_o learned_a be_v out_o of_o the_o common_a road_n of_o the_o people_n and_o so_o be_v their_o word_n and_o language_n too_o and_o when_o they_o write_v they_o can_v hardly_o avoid_v the_o term_n of_o the_o school_n and_o all_o affect_v a_o certain_a eloquence_n that_o darken_v the_o thought_n which_o we_o will_v express_v both_o because_o we_o have_v not_o clear_a perception_n of_o those_o truth_n and_o we_o still_o seek_v ourselves_o and_o many_o who_o have_v pretend_v to_o divine_a inspiration_n have_v write_v so_o mysterious_o and_o under_o such_o dark_a figure_n that_o they_o can_v be_v easy_o comprehend_v but_o those_o write_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o we_o may_v easy_o and_o distinct_o perceive_v the_o intent_n of_o they_o so_o plain_a that_o child_n and_o the_o most_o illiterate_a people_n may_v easy_o understand_v they_o and_o so_o simple_a that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o humane_a art_n or_o varnish_n to_o be_v see_v in_o they_o xxiv_o they_o 9_o it_o be_v no_o less_o remarkable_a that_o there_o be_v a_o convince_a force_n and_o efficacy_n in_o those_o write_n which_o do_v sensible_o touch_v the_o heart_n of_o those_o that_o read_v they_o their_o conscience_n bear_v they_o witness_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n as_o to_o themselves_o and_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o all_o not_o that_o all_o be_v so_o who_o read_v any_o of_o they_o temoignage_n no_o more_o than_o all_o who_o hear_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v affect_v with_o his_o word_n though_o he_o speak_v as_o one_o that_o have_v authority_n and_o not_o as_o the_o scribe_n though_o never_o man_n speak_v like_o he_o yet_o the_o pharisee_n say_v he_o have_v a_o devil_n but_o other_o who_o hear_v he_o feel_v that_o he_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n so_o some_o call_v this_o virgin_n a_o devil_n and_o enchantress_n a_o mad_a whimsical_a woman_n other_o be_v so_o convince_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n contain_v in_o her_o write_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o answer_v she_o be_v not_o mad_a but_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n many_o i_o know_v can_v bear_v i_o witness_n that_o upon_o the_o read_n of_o her_o write_n they_o have_v feel_v a_o deep_a sense_n of_o divine_a thing_n and_o their_o heart_n and_o conscience_n have_v be_v more_o touch_v than_o by_o most_o of_o other_o write_n which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o this_o can_v be_v testify_v by_o person_n of_o different_a party_n and_o persuasion_n by_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a and_o it_o deserve_v the_o more_o consideration_n that_o they_o be_v not_o write_v in_o a_o way_n to_o move_v the_o passion_n in_o flight_n of_o devotion_n as_o some_o will_v have_v they_o pass_v for_o but_o in_o a_o simple_a naked_a declaration_n of_o divine_a truth_n all_o write_n carry_v along_o with_o they_o certain_a impression_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o which_o they_o be_v write_v which_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o discern_v and_o according_o to_o be_v affect_v by_o they_o if_o self_n be_v the_o chief_a mover_n it_o will_v be_v see_v through_o all_o the_o disguise_n of_o the_o writer_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a dryness_n and_o deadness_n in_o most_o of_o write_n and_o sermon_n now_o adays_o about_o divine_a thing_n that_o they_o do_v not_o at_o all_o touch_n the_o heart_n and_o even_o the_o best_a of_o they_o savour_n more_o of_o the_o head_n of_o than_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n than_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o can_v rise_v high_a than_o their_o original_a they_o may_v strike_v and_o please_v our_o fancy_n but_o they_o can_v move_v the_o divine_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n of_o this_o than_o a._n b._n do_v when_o she_o complain_v that_o though_o there_o be_v never_o more_o preach_v than_o in_o this_o age_n yet_o never_o a_o great_a spiritual_a famine_n that_o they_o do_v not_o give_v nourishment_n to_o soul_n which_o every_o day_n wax_v lean_a and_o lean_a in_o virtue_n and_o cold_a in_o charity_n 170._o she_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o preacher_n can_v be_v god_n word_n for_o then_o certain_o it_o will_v produce_v its_o effect_n in_o well-disposed_a soul_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v powerful_a it_o will_v possess_v the_o inseparable_a quality_n of_o god_n righteousness_n and_o goodness_n and_o truth_n if_o one_o of_o these_o be_v want_v it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o may_v use_v the_o term_n and_o expression_n which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n use_v yet_o that_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o call_v by_o god_n but_o carry_v to_o the_o ministry_n by_o ambition_n or_o some_o worldly_a and_o human_a interest_n their_o sermon_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o apish_a mummery_n if_o a_o ape_n see_v a_o excellent_a painter_n draw_v a_o curious_a picture_n and_o if_o in_o his_o absence_n it_o shall_v take_v the_o pencil_n and_o colour_n and_o so_o scratch_v upon_o the_o same_o table_n it_o will_v entire_o daub_v all_o though_o it_o make_v use_v of_o the_o same_o pencil_n and_o colour_n because_o it_o want_v the_o painter_n spirit_n this_o defect_n mar_v all_o even_o what_o be_v beautiful_a there_o before_o the_o ape_n touch_v it_o this_o be_v the_o true_a emblem_n of_o most_o of_o the_o preacher_n and_o writer_n now_o adays_o in_o religion_n they_o have_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o pallet_n wherein_o be_v distinguish_v the_o fine_a colour_n of_o virtue_n with_o which_o jesus_n christ_n begin_v the_o excellent_a portraiture_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n they_o
not_o interpose_v and_o become_v a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o they_o who_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o deep_a fence_n of_o the_o wretched_a state_n into_o which_o man_n have_v plunge_v himself_o he_o ardent_o pray_v and_o intercee_v with_o his_o heavenly_a father_n that_o he_o will_v have_v pity_n on_o those_o his_o wretched_a rebellious_a creature_n and_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o pardon_v they_o grant_v they_o his_o grace_n though_o most_o unworthy_a of_o it_o and_o allow_v they_o yet_o a_o time_n of_o trial_n become_v surety_n for_o they_o 30._o that_o they_o shall_v detest_v and_o abhor_v their_o corruption_n deny_v themselves_o and_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n his_o mediation_n be_v accept_v and_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o intercession_n man_n be_v pardon_v grace_n be_v give_v he_o of_o new_a and_o a_o time_n of_o trial_n allow_v he_o in_o which_o he_o must_v lead_v a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o thereby_o mortify_v his_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 2._o etc._n the_o time_n of_o trial_n give_v to_o man_n at_o first_o be_v a_o state_n of_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n but_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n the_o time_n of_o trial_n assign_v he_o be_v a_o state_n of_o labour_n and_o toil_n and_o therefore_o god_n thrust_v man_n out_o of_o a_o delightful_a paradise_n and_o suffer_v the_o malediction_n and_o curse_n of_o his_o sin_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o creature_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n that_o they_o all_o may_v afford_v he_o vexation_n instead_o of_o pleasure_n and_o so_o he_o may_v have_v occasion_n of_o do_v penitence_n because_o he_o have_v turn_v away_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o god_n and_o set_v they_o on_o the_o creature_n 3._o he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v undertake_v the_o recovery_n of_o mankind_n out_o of_o pure_a love_n and_o compassion_n he_o provide_v mean_n and_o remedy_n according_a to_o the_o different_a state_n of_o their_o malady_n the_o first_o command_n he_o give_v man_n as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n of_o his_o recovery_n etc._n be_v a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o labour_n to_o eat_v his_o meat_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o his_o face_n but_o man_n multiply_v their_o sin_n he_o multiply_v his_o command_n as_o so_o many_o mean_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o give_v they_o variety_n of_o precept_n to_o make_v they_o think_v upon_o god_n in_o all_o their_o action_n and_o word_n so_o that_o their_o heart_n may_v be_v in_o a_o continual_a elevation_n to_o he_o but_o they_o cleave_v to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n without_o comprehend_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o turn_v away_o yet_o more_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n place_v their_o affection_n on_o the_o creature_n the_o riches_n pleasure_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o life_n please_v themselves_o with_o the_o outside_n of_o their_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n 4._o he_o when_o all_o other_o mean_v prove_v unsuccessful_a jesus_n christ_n try_v the_o last_o remedy_n man_n be_v not_o capable_a in_o their_o mortal_a state_n of_o be_v teach_v by_o he_o in_o his_o glorious_a body_n he_o have_v obtain_v of_o his_o father_n to_o give_v they_o in_o spirit_n good_a thought_n and_o motion_n yea_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a light_n but_o all_o this_o be_v not_o capable_a to_o convert_v they_o or_o to_o make_v they_o sensible_a they_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n because_o of_o each_o one_o be_v inveterate_a habit_n to_o follow_v their_o brutish_a nature_n 50._o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o mean_a visible_a and_o sensible_a to_o their_o corruption_n to_o move_v their_o heart_n otherwise_o they_o have_v all_o be_v lose_v without_o a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o misery_n all_o perish_v without_o perceive_v it_o by_o a_o damnable_a imitation_n of_o one_o another_o thus_o all_o run_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n to_o hell_n have_v therefore_o obtain_v from_o his_o father_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n for_o they_o upon_o their_o repentance_n jesus_n christ_n resolve_v to_o become_v a_o mortal_a man._n he_o therefore_o clothes_n himself_o with_o our_o mortality_n and_o bring_v along_o with_o he_o his_o divine_a light_n to_o enlighten_v they_o and_o his_o divine_a love_n to_o inflame_v they_o he_o become_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v to_o corrupt_a man_n yet_o without_o sin_n he_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o word_n and_o his_o by_o example_n how_o they_o shall_v mortify_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n do_v penitence_n and_o recover_v the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o charge_v himself_o with_o the_o misery_n and_o frailty_n that_o sin_n have_v bring_v upon_o humane_a nature_n take_v on_o himself_o all_o their_o malediction_n and_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n which_o he_o do_v bear_v and_o suffer_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o sinner_n live_v a_o life_n of_o extreme_a poverty_n labour_n contempt_n and_o pain_n undergo_a a_o shameful_a painful_a and_o accurse_a death_n and_o so_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o all_o who_o shall_v thus_o follow_v his_o step_n 5._o vis●ons_n god_n make_v his_o will_n know_v to_o good_a man_n to_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n by_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o since_o man_n be_v teach_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o mortal_a body_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o see_v or_o understand_v by_o his_o glorious_a body_n they_o have_v receive_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n so_o that_o they_o need_v not_o bodily_a vision_n to_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n speak_v now_o to_o they_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n enlighten_v soul_n with_o his_o divine_a light_n 99_o inward_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o operate_v in_o soul_n disengage_v from_o themselves_o and_o from_o all_o earthly_a affection_n act_v in_o they_o sweet_o and_o powerful_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n it_o hear_v then_o as_o a_o soft_a wind_n which_o surround_v it_o with_o joy_n make_v it_o see_v what_o it_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o avoid_v both_o for_o its_o own_o conduct_n and_o for_o that_o of_o other_o well-disposed_a people_n state_n 4._o as_o to_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sum_n of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n be_v 1._o present_a that_o all_o man_n have_v corrupt_v their_o way_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n true_o mortify_v to_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o regenerate_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o 2._o babel_n that_o the_o present_a state_n of_o christendom_n be_v a_o perfect_a babel_n our_o language_n be_v confound_v and_o the_o builder_n do_v not_o understand_v one_o another_o babel_n 3._o 1._o that_o we_o have_v gloss_v away_o the_o law_n and_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o our_o exposition_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v moses_n law_n by_o their_o tradition_n 4._o now_o that_o we_o live_v present_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o he_o rule_v in_o spirit_n through_o all_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o three_o antichristian_a quality_n which_o he_o shed_v into_o man_n nature_n injustice_n malice_n and_o hypocrisy_n 100_o under_o a_o cover_n of_o religion_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a quality_n righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n which_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o plant_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o all_o his_o disciple_n that_o man_n seduce_v one_o another_o under_o fair_a appearance_n ●9_n that_o sin_n be_v mask_v with_o holiness_n and_o cover_v with_o hypocrisy_n 5._o 76._o that_o the_o source_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n in_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o churchman_n and_o that_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n be_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o all_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o christian_n come_v from_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o their_o guide_n 6._o begin_v that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n now_o be_v universal_a and_o come_v to_o a_o height_n great_a than_o in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n the_o sentence_n of_o god_n last_o judgement_n be_v irrevocable_o pass_v and_o the_o plague_n be_v begin_v and_o will_v continue_v till_o that_o by_o war_n famine_n pestilence_n and_o other_o grievous_a judgement_n 29._o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v consume_v from_o off_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v slow_o and_o in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n that_o many_o may_v thereby_o be_v awaken_v and_o bring_v to_o repentance_n come_v 5._o as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v her_o sentiment_n be_v spirit_n 1._o that_o god_n will_v yet_o once_o renew_v his_o gospel-spirit_n upon_o earth_n and_o will_v fill_v well-disposed_a soul_n with_o the_o spirit_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v while_n upon_o earth_n and_o
that_o the_o latter_a christian_n shall_v live_v in_o great_a perfection_n than_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v 125._o that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o lay_v before_o we_o those_o mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v we_o while_n on_o earth_n that_o we_o may_v clear_o see_v how_o far_o we_o be_v estrange_v from_o they_o and_o to_o give_v we_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o way_n to_o return_v and_o to_o take_v up_o again_o the_o same_o gospel-mean_n and_o recover_v the_o dependence_n of_o our_o will_n on_o god_n without_o which_o none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o god_n will_v give_v the_o full_a understanding_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o his_o name_n from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n both_o by_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o other_o saint_n his_o disciple_n 2._o earth_n the_o original_a design_n of_o god_n in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n be_v to_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o for_o which_o end_n he_o not_o only_o make_v man_n after_o his_o own_o likeness_n but_o he_o also_o become_v man_n that_o he_o may_v live_v with_o he_o in_o perfect_a resemblance_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o this_o be_v now_o suspend_v unto_o man_n because_o of_o his_o sin_n until_o that_o he_o have_v accomplish_v his_o penitence_n to_o which_o he_o be_v subject_v by_o sin_n yet_o since_o god_n do_v not_o change_n 158._o nor_o will_v ever_o alter_v his_o design_n this_o time_n of_o penitence_n be_v finish_v man_n will_v enter_v again_o into_o communion_n with_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o offend_v he_o he_o will_v speak_v to_o god_n face_n to_o face_n by_o his_o humanity_n which_o will_v be_v render_v immortal_a as_o well_o as_o be_v that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o may_v delight_v themselves_o perfect_o together_o upon_o earth_n which_o will_v then_o be_v render_v paradise_n by_o the_o lovely_a presence_n of_o god_n who_o for_o this_o end_n become_v man_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n will_v come_v in_o glory_n upon_o earth_n to_o live_v and_o reign_v for_o ever_o with_o man_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o design_n that_o god_n have_v over_o man_n and_o the_o alliance_n he_o have_v often_o promise_v to_o make_v with_o man._n 3._o integrity_n all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a and_o nothing_o that_o he_o have_v make_v shall_v ever_o perish_v and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n at_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n all_o thing_n shall_v be_v renew_v and_o restore_v into_o that_o primitive_a integrity_n in_o which_o they_o be_v at_o first_o create_v all_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n the_o fruit_n of_o man_n sin_n shall_v be_v whole_o take_v away_o all_o nature_n shall_v then_o put_v off_o the_o corruption_n 〈…〉_z darkness_n and_o all_o the_o disorder_n with_o which_o it_o have_v be_v taint_v since_o adam_n sin_n all_o shall_v become_v bright_a 1st_a glorious_a and_o luminous_a all_o corruption_n shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v re-establish_v in_o that_o glorious_a perfect_a state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v at_o first_o create_v and_o the_o soul_n become_v perfect_o pure_a shall_v take_v its_o delight_n with_o god_n and_o the_o body_n with_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o other_o creature_n for_o god_n create_v they_o for_o those_o end_n 148._o and_o for_o no_o other_o thing_n that_o man_n may_v have_v his_o full_a perfect_a contentment_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n in_o that_o life_n eternal_a wherein_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v reign_v always_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a who_o shall_v be_v unite_v in_o spirit_n unto_o god_n and_o in_o body_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 4._o all_o after_o the_o judgement_n when_o god_n shall_v take_v all_o malignity_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o all_o the_o creature_n the_o venom_n from_o serpent_n scorpion_n and_o other_o poisonous_a beast_n malady_n and_o infirmity_n from_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o weakness_n from_o spirit_n 153._o all_o this_o shall_v be_v reduce_v into_o some_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n all_o in_o a_o mass_n that_o these_o malignity_n may_v act_v together_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o their_o hand_n be_v render_v unto_o they_o for_o god_n never_o make_v any_o of_o all_o these_o evil_n he_o create_v all_o thing_n good_n man_n only_a by_o their_o wickedness_n have_v give_v malignity_n unto_o all_o create_a thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o appertain_v to_o they_o and_o to_o be_v render_v to_o they_o by_o the_o right_n of_o justice_n which_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v at_o the_o judgement_n when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v also_o that_o none_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n may_v perish_v and_o shall_v be_v send_v into_o that_o miserable_a corner_n with_o all_o the_o evil_n which_o shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o bless_a and_o from_o the_o earth_n from_o plant_n beast_n and_o all_o the_o element_n that_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v serve_v they_o only_o for_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n without_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o more_o evil_a as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o creation_n and_o all_o their_o malignity_n which_o they_o have_v contract_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v render_v unto_o their_o author_n 5._o 169._o god_n have_v at_o the_o first_o creation_n endue_v all_o live_a creature_n with_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v their_o like_a and_o man_n in_o his_o perfect_a state_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o power_n of_o produce_v his_o like_a without_o the_o help_n of_o another_o he_o shall_v be_v re-establish_v into_o the_o same_o state_n again_o so_o that_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o will_v be_v eternal_a propagation_n but_o altogether_o holy_a altogether_o pure_a and_o deify_v without_o concupiscible_a appetite_n but_o by_o pure_a act_n of_o love_n to_o god_n which_o will_v extend_v itself_o to_o the_o production_n of_o new_a creature_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o creator_n there_o there_o be_v not_o male_a and_o female_a they_o neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n but_o be_v as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n xxxviii_o damnable_a this_o as_o a_o sum_n of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v consider_v they_o without_o prejudice_n will_v hardly_o think_v that_o for_o they_o she_o deserve_v to_o be_v treat_v either_o as_o a_o heritick_n or_o as_o a_o mad_a whimsical_a woman_n it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v that_o she_o do_v not_o propose_v they_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o that_o according_a to_o st._n augustine_n these_o only_o be_v damnable_a doctrine_n which_o tend_v to_o destroy_v charity_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n which_o it_o be_v evident_a those_o sentiment_n do_v not_o and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v appear_v that_o many_o other_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n do_v which_o pass_v among_o many_o for_o very_a christian_n thirty-nine_o christianity_n beside_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o sentiment_n tend_v to_o clear_v and_o confirm_v all_o the_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o endear_v they_o to_o we_o they_o show_v we_o the_o great_a design_n of_o god_n love_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n the_o excellent_a state_n in_o which_o he_o make_v he_o and_o the_o happiness_n to_o which_o he_o design_v he_o they_o make_v appear_v evident_o that_o all_o our_o evil_n be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o all_o our_o good_a from_o god_n they_o show_v we_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o man_n redemption_n be_v set_v about_o and_o not_o the_o fall_v angel_n why_o jesus_n christ_n take_v such_o interest_n in_o man_n become_v intercessor_n and_o surety_n for_o he_o and_o why_o his_o mediation_n be_v accept_v by_o god_n his_o father_n and_o why_o after_o other_o mean_v essay_v he_o at_o last_o clothe_v himself_o with_o man_n mortality_n why_o the_o follow_v of_o his_o counsel_n and_o example_n be_v indispensible_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o horrid_a corruption_n that_o man_n be_v fall_v into_o by_o sin_n both_o as_o to_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o the_o creation_n by_o he_o and_o how_o mad_a we_o be_v to_o gratify_v our_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o to_o love_v this_o present_a world_n they_o direct_v we_o to_o a_o right_a use_n of_o the_o rod_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o awaken_v we_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o our_o present_a state_n wherein_o all_o the_o world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n they_o give_v we_o a_o prospect_n
god_n give_v they_o light_n and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o see_v isa_n 60._o in_o a_o word_n she_o make_v appear_v that_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o parable_n figure_n and_o prophecy_n do_v point_n out_o this_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o man_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o design_n which_o god_n have_v over_o men._n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o just_a and_o necessary_a thing_n it_o be_v unconceivable_a that_o god_n will_v have_v create_v this_o beautiful_a world_n only_o for_o this_o short_a life_n of_o penitence_n only_o for_o our_o misery_n only_o to_o serve_v devil_n and_o man_n as_o instrument_n of_o their_o wickedness_n and_o rebellion_n against_o he_o and_o then_o shall_v abolish_v this_o great_a work_n of_o his_o hand_n 7._o that_o it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o all_o thing_n be_v re-establish_v in_o their_o first_o state_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v that_o reparation_n be_v make_v of_o all_o the_o injury_n and_o affront_v do_v to_o his_o humanity_n and_o to_o those_o who_o love_v and_o follow_v he_o and_o that_o all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v unjust_o be_v repair_v both_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_o and_o that_o on_o the_o same_o theatre_n that_o god_n have_v give_v man_n both_o a_o body_n and_o soul_n there_o must_v be_v likewise_o a_o paradise_n for_o both_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n be_v the_o complete_a paradise_n of_o the_o one_o and_o all_o this_o visible_a world_n with_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o free_v from_o all_o malignity_n and_o god_n dwell_v visible_o and_o bodily_a with_o man_n therein_o the_o paradise_n of_o the_o other_o which_o will_v endure_v for_o ever_o for_o god_n recompense_n be_v not_o temporal_a and_o finite_a but_o eternal_a as_o come_v from_o a_o eternal_a god_n who_o can_v give_v finite_a or_o imperfect_a gift_n xli_o scripture_n these_o be_v the_o most_o singular_a of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n and_o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o inconsistent_a with_o themselves_o nor_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o with_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a truth_n of_o christianity_n that_o they_o serve_v to_o clear_v a_o thousand_o passage_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o tend_v to_o promote_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o man_n and_o lead_v we_o to_o mortify_v our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o to_o despise_v this_o present_a world_n a._n b._n herself_o do_v not_o at_o first_o speak_v or_o write_v of_o these_o sentiment_n but_o to_o some_o friend_n and_o when_o they_o have_v show_v they_o to_o other_o she_o be_v trouble_v know_v that_o the_o devil_n will_v take_v advantage_n thereby_o to_o make_v they_o despise_v the_o other_o truth_n necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n even_o as_o many_o of_o our_o saviour_n disciple_n be_v offend_v at_o a_o hard_a say_v of_o his_o 66._o forsake_v he_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o he_o and_o i_o will_v not_o have_v offer_v to_o give_v a_o summary_n of_o those_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n in_o this_o apology_n but_o that_o they_o be_v now_o all_o public_a in_o her_o print_a write_n they_o who_o have_v set_v themselves_o to_o give_v a_o odious_a character_n of_o she_o and_o her_o sentiment_n to_o the_o world_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o dress_v they_o up_o in_o a_o fool_n be_v coat_n to_o excite_v the_o people_n to_o cry_v out_o both_o of_o she_o and_o they_o away_o with_o they_o crucify_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o have_v choose_v to_o give_v a_o simple_a and_o true_a narrative_a of_o they_o even_o of_o those_o which_o seem_v most_o singular_a and_o extravagant_a all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mystery_n and_o the_o most_o ordinary_a thing_n the_o formation_n of_o man_n now_o and_o all_o the_o other_o work_v will_v seem_v to_o we_o as_o strange_a if_o we_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o see_v they_o every_o day_n such_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v inquire_v into_o neither_o out_o of_o vain_a curiosity_n nor_o from_o a_o dispute_a humour_n 25._o which_o beget_v presumption_n and_o pride_n of_o spirit_n for_o the_o divine_a mystery_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v admire_v and_o adore_v than_o curious_o search_v into_o by_o our_o blind_a reason_n let_v we_o make_v it_o our_o great_a business_n to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n in_o humility_n and_o self-denial_n 8._o if_o we_o will_v be_v true_o enlighten_v and_o deliver_v from_o all_o blindness_n of_o heart_n 4._o god_n walk_v with_o the_o simple_a he_o reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o humble_a he_o give_v understanding_n to_o little_a one_o he_o open_v his_o mean_v to_o pure_a heart_n and_o he_o hide_v his_o grace_n from_o the_o curious_a and_o the_o proud_a human_a reason_n be_v weak_a and_o may_v be_v deceive_v but_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v deceive_v see_v psal_n 18._o 118._o xlii_o fair_a now_o the_o account_n i_o have_v give_v of_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n both_o as_o to_o the_o essential_o and_o accessary_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v a_o just_a and_o true_a representation_n which_o may_v be_v more_o full_o and_o satisfy_o have_v from_o she_o own_o write_n and_o i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o all_o impartial_a reader_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o character_n which_o some_o have_v be_v please_v to_o give_v of_o her_o sentiment_n as_o heretical_a blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o extravagant_a be_v just_a and_o equal_a and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o result_n rather_o of_o their_o mistake_v and_o prejudices_fw-la than_o a_o plain_a and_o fair_a account_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o sentiment_n the_o excellent_a mounseur_fw-fr paschal_n in_o his_o pensees_n chretiennes_n give_v it_o as_o the_o most_o essential_a and_o distinguish_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o true_a religion_n that_o it_o make_v its_o chief_a precept_n and_o the_o great_a and_o essential_a duty_n of_o man_n to_o be_v to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o peculiar_a and_o singular_a character_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o all_o other_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v impartial_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n as_o it_o represent_v in_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n with_o the_o account_n of_o it_o deliver_v to_o we_o in_o the_o system_n of_o divinity_n of_o the_o respective_a party_n in_o christendom_n i_o think_v it_o will_v evident_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o former_a though_o it_o make_v the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o great_a end_n of_o religion_n and_o all_o the_o other_o duty_n of_o it_o mean_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o that_o end_n and_o that_o the_o other_o though_o they_o can_v omit_v when_o they_o give_v a_o account_n of_o christianity_n to_o mention_v this_o as_o one_o of_o its_o great_a precept_n yet_o they_o so_o shuffle_v and_o confound_v doctrine_n and_o give_v it_o such_o a_o place_n in_o their_o system_n as_o may_v make_v people_n lay_v great_a stress_n on_o other_o thing_n and_o give_v they_o ground_n to_o hope_v they_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o or_o without_o conform_v our_o life_n to_o the_o rule_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o lead_v to_o it_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n a_o apology_n for_o m._n ant._n bourignon_n part_n ii_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o prejudices_fw-la raise_v against_o her_o sentiment_n and_o write_n i._o rash_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a than_o for_o people_n upon_o light_n and_o weak_a ground_n to_o take_v up_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o person_n and_o sentiment_n of_o other_o and_o to_o judge_v rash_o and_o inconsiderate_o of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v a_o fault_n to_o which_o people_n of_o all_o temper_n be_v subject_a the_o learned_a the_o dogmatical_a and_o the_o abettor_n of_o party_n can_v endure_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o lessen_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o sentiment_n or_o their_o party_n they_o present_o raise_v a_o hue-and-cry_a and_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o animate_v the_o people_n thus_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v full_a of_o spite_n and_o prejudice_n against_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o inspire_v the_o people_n with_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o generality_n of_o man_n see_v with_o other_o man_n eye_n and_o judge_v with_o other_o man_n understanding_n they_o can_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o weigh_v and_o consider_v thing_n impartial_o themselves_o but_o they_o trust_v to_o the_o skill_n and_o sincerity_n of_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o judge_v for_o they_o and_o such_o for_o the_o most_o part_n judge_v rash_o and_o by_o their_o passion_n lead_v the_o multitude_n to_o do_v so_o too_o yea_o even_o person_n of_o good_a inclination_n and_o who_o have_v a_o true_a zeal_n for_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n be_v apt_a to_o commit_v the_o same_o fault_n thus_o st._n paul_n before_o he_o be_v
profession_n of_o this_o new_a worship_n and_o be_v join_v to_o those_o person_n and_o their_o opinion_n now_o she_o establish_v no_o new_a worship_n nor_o new_a exercise_n nor_o law_n nor_o rule_v that_o savour_n of_o a_o sect_n but_o only_o by_o her_o life_n and_o write_n call_v on_o people_n to_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o imitate_v the_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o state_n they_o be_v not_o and_o without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v save_v in_o her_o letter_n to_o m._n reinboth_n 46._o superintendant_n in_o holstein_n i_o be_o very_o far_o say_v she_o from_o make_v a_o new_a church_n as_o some_o malicious_o slander_v i_o for_o i_o bring_v no_o new_a thing_n and_o novelty_n be_v very_o displease_v to_o i_o i_o be_o careful_a therefore_o not_o to_o introduce_v any_o but_o i_o labour_v to_o advance_v in_o a_o gospel-life_n and_o to_o practice_v it_o and_o all_o my_o write_n and_o all_o i_o say_v former_o to_o well-disposed_a person_n aim_v only_o at_o this_o and_o i_o forbear_v now_o to_o speak_v to_o they_o because_o i_o find_v it_o be_v unprofitable_a your_o preacher_n wrong_v i_o great_o when_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o i_o draw_v their_o people_n from_o they_o for_o in_o the_o ten_o month_n i_o have_v be_v in_o holstein_n i_o have_v not_o make_v acquaintance_n with_o so_o much_o as_o one_o person_n not_o so_o much_o as_o with_o my_o landlady_n so_o that_o i_o give_v they_o no_o ground_n to_o say_v or_o think_v that_o i_o strive_v to_o draw_v people_n to_o form_v a_o new_a church_n or_o teach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n see_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n leave_v we_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_a and_o the_o last_o that_o god_n will_v send_v unto_o men._n no_o new_a thing_n need_v be_v invent_v but_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o perfect_v ourselves_o in_o it_o and_o to_o put_v it_o true_o in_o practice_n instead_o of_o dispute_v about_o it_o for_o all_o these_o dispute_n be_v raise_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o bring_v hatred_n division_n and_o discord_n among_o christian_n whereas_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v unite_v in_o peace_n and_o love_n in_o the_o meek_a spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v now_o divide_v in_o as_o many_o party_n as_o there_o be_v different_a sect_n which_o be_v lamentable_a and_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o christian_a soul_n and_o make_v that_o they_o do_v not_o love_v one_o another_o though_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o earnest_o recommend_v to_o they_o to_o love_v one_o another_o they_o be_v all_o partial_a and_o only_o love_v the_o party_n which_o they_o have_v undertake_v to_o stand_v by_o or_o defend_v this_o proceed_v from_o a_o antichristian_a spirit_n and_o not_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n xx._n pastor_n they_o libel_v she_o that_o she_o despise_a sermon_n sacrament_n pastor_n priesthood_n and_o all_o government_n which_o be_v all_o most_o horrid_a calumny_n this_o say_v she_o in_o her_o letter_n to_o dr._n nieman_n superintendant_n in_o holstein_n be_v a_o gross_a calumny_n for_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o both_o church_n and_o state_n may_v continue_v in_o vigour_n for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o the_o land_n nor_o commonwealth_n maintain_v etc._n see_v preach_n and_o sacrament_n preserve_v among_o man_n the_o memory_n of_o sacred_a thing_n and_o state_n keep_v their_o people_n in_o their_o duty_n by_o justice_n or_o else_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n and_o the_o good_a will_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o wicked_a if_o there_o be_v no_o government_n and_o magistrate_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o i_o indeed_o despise_v the_o abuse_n of_o church_n and_o sermon_n and_o sacrament_n but_o not_o the_o use_n of_o they_o nor_o the_o essence_n of_o these_o which_o be_v establish_v by_o god_n as_o be_v also_o government_n and_o magistracy_n and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o despise_v a_o thing_n in_o itself_o and_o the_o abuse_v that_o be_v make_v of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v that_o every_o sect_n abuse_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o another_o to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o no_o worth_n or_o to_o despise_v it_o because_o many_o abuse_v it_o now_o it_o seem_v buchardus_fw-la will_v make_v people_n believe_v that_o i_o despise_v all_o these_o holy_a thing_n when_o i_o despise_v only_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o as_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o do_v who_o lie_v to_o heart_n god_n honour_n they_o ought_v to_o lament_v when_o they_o see_v man_n to_o degenerate_a as_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o hold_v mere_o to_o the_o bark_n of_o the_o thing_n ordain_v by_o god_n without_o square_n their_o life_n by_o they_o they_o say_v i_o despise_v the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o office_n of_o piety_n while_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o body_n that_o esteem_v they_o more_o than_o i_o do_v for_o the_o quaker_n accuse_v i_o by_o their_o defamatory_n treatise_n that_o i_o have_v a_o abominable_a doctrine_n send_v person_n to_o church_n sermon_n or_o sacrament_n or_o other_o outward_a solemnity_n desire_v to_o infer_v from_o this_o that_o i_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n since_o i_o still_o esteem_v those_o outward_a devotion_n and_o also_o incite_v other_o to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o as_o mean_v to_o approach_v unto_o god_n your_o preacher_n may_v read_v what_o i_o have_v write_v in_o that_o advertisement_n upon_o this_o head_n so_o that_o i_o need_v not_o enlarge_v myself_o far_o here_o but_o will_v satisfy_v they_o as_o to_o what_o they_o say_v that_o in_o effect_n i_o despise_v the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o outward_a devotion_n because_o i_o do_v not_o go_v myself_o to_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o they_o will_v needs_o reject_v all_o that_o i_o say_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o holy_a thing_n because_o i_o do_v not_o observe_v they_o myself_o to_o give_v a_o example_n to_o other_o and_o will_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o i_o speak_v with_o dissimulation_n in_o praise_n of_o holy_a thing_n and_o not_o sincere_o as_o i_o think_v in_o my_o heart_n this_o convince_v i_o that_o they_o no_o way_n know_v i_o for_o if_o they_o only_o know_v i_o outward_o they_o will_v sufficient_o see_v that_o i_o be_o sincere_a and_o not_o at_o all_o feign_a or_o dissemble_v so_o that_o if_o i_o have_v in_o my_o heart_n a_o contempt_n for_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o outward_a devotion_n i_o will_v open_o declare_v it_o by_o word_n and_o writ_n for_o i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n and_o be_o not_o afraid_a to_o tell_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o know_v i_o have_v indeed_o write_v against_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o outward_a solemnity_n but_o i_o never_o speak_v against_o the_o thing_n themselves_o see_v they_o be_v good_a and_o have_v often_o serve_v i_o as_o mean_v of_o union_n with_o god_n but_o if_o i_o do_v not_o go_v now_o to_o the_o church_n or_o sacrament_n it_o be_v not_o out_o of_o contempt_n of_o holy_a thing_n but_o because_o i_o have_v no_o long_o so_o great_a need_n of_o outward_a mean_n of_o union_n with_o god_n as_o i_o have_v former_o when_o the_o conversation_n of_o man_n and_o the_o diversion_n of_o the_o care_n of_o temporal_a affair_n do_v divert_v my_o attention_n from_o god_n i_o retire_v then_o to_o church_n and_o approach_v the_o sacrament_n that_o i_o may_v be_v the_o more_o recollect_v and_o unite_v to_o god_n but_o since_o god_n have_v give_v i_o the_o grace_n to_o find_v this_o recollection_n in_o my_o little_a chamber_n and_o to_o entertain_v myself_o in_o spirit_n with_o god_n in_o solitude_n i_o have_v not_o think_v it_o so_o necessary_a to_o use_v these_o outward_a ceremony_n which_o sometime_o will_v serve_v i_o for_o a_o distraction_n to_o my_o inward_a recollection_n this_o be_v partly_o the_o reason_n why_o i_o have_v leave_v they_o off_o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o if_o i_o have_v the_o freedom_n to_o go_v to_o church_n i_o will_v go_v to_o it_o on_o the_o day_n command_v and_o will_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v since_o i_o be_o under_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n jesus_n christ_n teach_v i_o to_o obey_v the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v on_o earth_n obey_v caesar_n and_o other_o superior_n though_o they_o be_v sometime_o evil_a but_o their_o ordinance_n good_a as_o i_o have_v particular_o show_v in_o the_o say_a advertisement_n but_o i_o can_v go_v to_o church_n without_o hazard_n of_o my_o life_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o expose_v myself_o to_o so_o evident_a danger_n and_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o
they_o will_v become_v no_o less_o for_o this_o say_v and_o if_o there_o be_v none_o at_o least_o some_o will_v be_v awaken_v out_o of_o their_o security_n and_o endeavour_n to_o become_v so_o if_o a._n b._n have_v say_v that_o god_n by_o a_o unchangeable_a decree_n from_o all_o eternity_n have_v predestinate_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o damnation_n it_o may_v then_o indeed_o be_v say_v that_o she_o be_v void_a of_o charity_n to_o god_n and_o man_n but_o when_o she_o declare_v that_o god_n be_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n and_o yet_o that_o all_o man_n be_v live_v in_o a_o contradiction_n to_o the_o life_n and_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o can_v not_o do_v they_o a_o more_o charitable_a office_n than_o to_o warn_v they_o of_o their_o danger_n will_v they_o say_v the_o psalmist_n be_v uncharitable_a and_o damn_v all_o the_o world_n 3._o because_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o lord_n look_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o man_n to_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o do_v understand_v and_o seek_v god_n they_o be_v all_o go_v aside_o they_o be_v altogether_o become_v filthy_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o weigh_v the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o this_o say_v as_o to_o himself_o and_o see_v if_o he_o can_v make_v this_o particular_a exception_n to_o the_o general_a say_v there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n upon_o earth_n let_v he_o set_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o it_o except_o i_o myself_o and_o if_o his_o conscience_n dare_v not_o write_v down_o this_o exception_n he_o have_v reason_n to_o thank_v the_o charity_n that_o put_v he_o to_o the_o trial_n without_o regard_n whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a as_o to_o other_o which_o will_v avail_v he_o nothing_o so_o long_o as_o it_o hold_v as_o to_o himself_o and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o prejudice_n 162._o that_o god_n will_v make_v she_o and_o her_o write_n the_o mean_a of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o gospel_n spirit_n she_o say_v it_o be_v god_n who_o enlighten_v understanding_n who_o warm_v will_n with_o his_o love_n who_o produce_v charity_n in_o soul_n in_o short_a who_o be_v the_o only_a giver_n of_o all_o good_a without_o any_o creature_n be_v able_a to_o cause_n to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o another_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n which_o be_v to_o live_v again_o to_o god_n and_o to_o die_v to_o one_o self_n this_o be_v a_o masterpiece_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n much_o more_o rare_a and_o precious_a than_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o but_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o creature_n who_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o he_o and_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n who_o will_v make_v other_o partaker_n of_o the_o light_n which_o god_n communicate_v to_o they_o that_o by_o it_o they_o may_v be_v enlighten_v and_o know_v their_o error_n and_o the_o way_n to_o become_v true_a believer_n the_o understanding_n the_o speech_n and_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o spiritual_a mother_n be_v the_o matter_n with_o which_o god_n will_v beget_v his_o true_a child_n make_v they_o comprehend_v his_o truth_n by_o the_o word_n write_n and_o action_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n immediate_o who_o be_v few_o in_o number_n because_o man_n be_v now_o so_o divert_v in_o the_o affair_n and_o business_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o can_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n though_o he_o speak_v continual_o to_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o supply_v their_o weakness_n and_o the_o wander_n of_o their_o spirit_n his_o great_a goodness_n cause_v to_o speak_v and_o write_v by_o sensible_a and_o visible_a object_n the_o thing_n which_o may_v render_v all_o those_o true_a believer_n who_o true_o desire_v to_o become_v so_o and_o that_o her_o write_n be_v of_o this_o nature_n full_a of_o divine_a and_o save_v truth_n simple_a and_o solid_n milk_n for_o babe_n and_o meat_n for_o strong_a man_n suit_v for_o all_o capacity_n and_o all_o age_n they_o manifest_v themselves_o as_o the_o light_n do_v to_o those_o who_o be_v not_o blind_a and_o as_o to_o their_o reproach_v she_o 62._o that_o be_v a_o woman_n yet_o she_o will_v presume_v to_o instruct_v the_o world_n when_o st._n paul_n will_v not_o suffer_v a_o woman_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o call_v she_o in_o contempt_n and_o old_a wife_n she_o say_v that_o for_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n she_o can_v not_o hinder_v it_o since_o no_o body_n form_n themselves_o they_o must_v ask_v god_n if_o they_o will_v know_v why_o he_o create_v she_o a_o woman_n and_o not_o a_o man_n that_o she_o herself_o have_v be_v displease_v at_o it_o but_o since_o god_n make_v she_o know_v it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n she_o be_v content_a for_o she_o love_v rather_o to_o be_v a_o little_a atom_n in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n than_o a_o whole_a world_n in_o her_o own_o will._n and_o when_o she_o begin_v to_o teach_v by_o her_o write_n it_o be_v by_o a_o express_a command_n of_o god_n which_o she_o long_o resist_v for_o which_o she_o beg_v pardon_n for_o she_o can_v not_o resolve_v on_o this_o because_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n who_o have_v never_o so_o much_o authority_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n as_o a_o man._n but_o she_o come_v over_o all_o humane_a respect_n and_o expose_v herself_o to_o all_o their_o mockery_n she_o say_v if_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n must_v be_v reject_v because_o they_o be_v dictate_v by_o a_o woman_n all_o the_o great_a and_o learned_a that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n ought_v also_o to_o be_v reject_v see_v all_o be_v equal_o come_v of_o a_o woman_n why_o shall_v they_o then_o despise_v their_o origin_n since_o god_n do_v not_o despise_v it_o but_o make_v use_n of_o they_o to_o operate_v his_o great_a marvel_n and_o always_o figure_v the_o church_n his_o spouse_n by_o a_o woman_n woman_n be_v as_o capable_a of_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o man_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o their_o soul_n and_o the_o bodily_a difference_n respect_v nature_n only_o in_o which_o even_a woman_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o regard_v than_o man_n see_v when_o god_n will_v needs_o become_v man_n he_o will_v have_v a_o woman_n for_o his_o mother_n but_o not_o a_o man_n for_o his_o father_n and_o he_o have_v do_v his_o great_a wonder_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o woman_n what_o triumphant_a victory_n do_v judith_n obtain_v against_o holofernes_n and_o esther_n in_o the_o deliverance_n of_o god_n people_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v not_o permit_v woman_n to_o teach_v the_o apostle_n she_o say_v ordain_v the_o age_a woman_n to_o teach_v the_o young_a and_o to_o instruct_v their_o child_n and_o family_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n we_o read_v of_o many_o women-prophetesses_a foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o a_o woman_n to_o prophesy_v with_o her_o head_n cover_v she_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o let_v god_n spe●k_v by_o a_o woman_n if_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n since_o he_o speak_v in_o former_a time_n to_o a_o prophet_n by_o a_o beast_n that_o he_o bestow_v his_o grace_n and_o wisdom_n on_o who_o he_o please_v and_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o ask_v he_o why_o he_o do_v so_o that_o before_o god_n it_o be_v not_o man_n or_o woman_n that_o signify_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v whether_o she_o be_v man_n or_o woman_n but_o whether_o what_o she_o say_v be_v just_a and_o true_a that_o she_o write_v by_o a_o express_a command_n of_o god_n do_v this_o as_o secret_o as_o she_o can_v shut_v up_o in_o her_o chamber_n that_o man_n be_v now_o less_o dispose_v to_o receive_v his_o divine_a light_n than_o woman_n since_o their_o heart_n be_v blow_v up_o with_o pride_n to_o apply_v all_o glory_n and_o authority_n to_o themselves_o instead_o of_o refer_v it_o to_o god_n and_o can_v endure_v that_o a_o simple_a woman_n as_o she_o shall_v speak_v of_o divine_a thing_n lest_o their_o learning_n shall_v be_v less_o esteem_v so_o those_o great_a philosopher_n will_v not_o let_v god_n do_v his_o marvel_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o virgin_n but_o will_v oblige_v he_o to_o operate_v by_o great_a divine_n 28._o not_o remember_v that_o he_o have_v say_v *_o he_o have_v choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v mighty_a and_o the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o
thing_n which_o be_v despise_v yea_o and_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o nought_o thing_n that_o be_v that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n and_o thus_o he_o destroy_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o bring_v to_o nothing_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prudent_a so_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v where_o be_v the_o wise_a where_o be_v the_o scribe_n where_o be_v the_o disputer_n of_o this_o world_n this_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v be_v the_o way_n of_o god_n deal_v in_o former_a time_n and_o why_o will_v they_o have_v he_o to_o alter_v it_o now_o when_o the_o pastor_n doctor_n and_o teacher_n the_o learned_a the_o scribe_n and_o the_o disputer_n of_o the_o age_n be_v as_o full_a of_o their_o own_o wisdom_n of_o their_o humane_a study_n and_o learning_n as_o ever_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n the_o wiseman_n and_o philosopher_n be_v when_o god_n raise_v up_o publican_n and_o fisherman_n to_o confound_v their_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n by_o the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o word_n that_o it_o be_v not_o st._n paul_n mean_v that_o god_n may_v not_o thus_o communicate_v his_o light_n and_o truth_n to_o a_o woman_n as_o well_o as_o man_n 23._o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o saying_n themselves_o in_o his_o time_n when_o the_o faithful_a meet_v together_o it_o be_v not_o as_o now_o when_o a_o man_n who_o have_v his_o head_n full_a of_o learning_n declaim_v a_o hour_n or_o two_o alone_a very_o often_o with_o conceitedness_n enough_o to_o the_o people_n who_o must_v take_v for_o good_a coin_n all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v such_o and_o which_o he_o stamp_v with_o passage_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o then_o there_o be_v mutual_a conference_n where_o each_o of_o the_o faithful_a be_v allow_v to_o tell_v their_o sentiment_n or_o ask_v that_o of_o his_o brethren_n and_o elder_n but_o that_o all_o may_v be_v do_v in_o order_n st._n paul_n ordain_v that_o their_o woman_n may_v not_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o interlocutor_n either_o by_o tell_v their_o own_o thought_n or_o ask_v those_o of_o other_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v this_o at_o home_n and_o even_o there_o shall_v not_o pretend_v to_o teach_v their_o husband_n but_o learn_v of_o they_o it_o be_v evident_a then_o he_o speak_v of_o ordinary_a woman_n marry_v and_o encumber_a with_o the_o care_n of_o their_o house_n who_o have_v need_v to_o learn_v and_o yet_o will_v be_v think_v very_o know_v and_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o decency_n to_o avoid_v confusion_n but_o at_o present_a they_o will_v have_v st._n paul_n mean_v to_o be_v that_o woman_n enlighten_v by_o god_n in_o a_o free_a state_n always_o employ_v about_o divine_a thing_n shall_v i_o do_v not_o say_v abstain_v from_o speak_v public_o but_o even_o not_o write_v in_o secret_a in_o their_o own_o house_n the_o save_a light_n that_o god_n communicate_v to_o they_o and_o command_v they_o and_o that_o when_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o confusion_n since_o such_o be_v very_o rare_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o their_o number_n will_v bring_v confusion_n this_o be_v as_o far_o from_o his_o opinion_n as_o falsehood_n from_o truth_n who_o a_o little_a before_o allow_v a_o woman_n to_o prophesy_v if_o she_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o it_o provide_v she_o be_v veil_v who_o know_v that_o anna_n speak_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o have_v see_v four_o virgin_n prophesy_v which_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n thus_o those_o envious_a usurper_n of_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o instruction_n be_v they_o become_v such_o absolute_a master_n of_o it_o as_o to_o oblige_v god_n to_o give_v it_o to_o no_o body_n but_o to_o they_o a_o passage_n of_o the_o life_n of_o t●res●_n be_v remarkable_a to_o this_o purpose_n as_o they_o speak_v to_o her_o one_o day_n of_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n and_o she_o think_v on_o they_o god_n say_v to_o she_o tell_v they_o not_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o one_o single_a passage_n of_o scripture_n but_o let_v they_o consider_v other_o place_n and_o ask_v they_o if_o they_o will_v bind_v up_o my_o hand_n xxiii_o pride_n they_o accuse_v she_o of_o intolerable_a and_o blasphemous_a pride_n in_o speak_v well_o of_o herself_o in_o pretend_v to_o know_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o and_o to_o understand_v they_o better_o than_o they_o who_o write_v they_o that_o she_o call_v herself_o a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n and_o that_o she_o exalt_v herself_o above_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n the_o virgin_n mary_n yea_o above_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o give_v a_o ill_a turn_n to_o one_o word_n but_o charity_n think_v no_o evil_a and_o interpret_v they_o by_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o their_o life_n spirit_n and_o sentiment_n 1._o 257._o that_o she_o exalt_v herself_o more_o than_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n the_o virgin_n mary_n etc._n etc._n she_o say_v be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n for_o i_o know_v very_o well_o say_v she_o that_o i_o be_o a_o simple_a humane_a creature_n as_o all_o other_o man_n come_v of_o the_o corrupt_a mass_n of_o adam_n and_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o i_o be_o either_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n or_o virgin_n mary_n or_o god_n himself_o as_o this_o bucchardus_fw-la say_v but_o i_o declare_v i_o be_o a_o frail_a creature_n as_o all_o other_o to_o who_o nevertheless_o god_n have_v send_v his_o light_n of_o truth_n to_o communicate_v it_o to_o men._n do_v they_o believe_v true_o that_o there_o be_v a_o live_a god_n they_o dare_v not_o treat_v so_o ill_a the_o thing_n which_o be_v declare_v from_o god_n and_o cause_n to_o be_v burn_v by_o the_o hangman_n the_o book_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v dictate_v of_o which_o they_o may_v have_v evidence_n both_o from_o god_n and_o man_n for_o they_o who_o see_v i_o write_v know_v very_o well_o that_o i_o do_v it_o without_o any_o humane_a speculation_n or_o study_n and_o that_o this_o flow_v from_o my_o spirit_n as_o a_o river_n of_o water_n flow_v from_o its_o fountain_n and_o that_o i_o only_o lend_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o spirit_n to_o another_o power_n than_o i_o many_o person_n be_v witness_n of_o this_o god_n also_o have_v give_v i_o a_o more_o sure_a testimony_n by_o impart_v to_o i_o his_o righteousness_n his_o truth_n and_o his_o charity_n for_o these_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o nature_n which_o be_v corrupt_a can_v produce_v any_o good_a nor_o any_o divine_a virtue_n because_o i_o be_o come_v from_o the_o corrupt_a mass_n of_o adam_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n there_o can_v not_o be_v in_o i_o any_o righteousness_n truth_n or_o charity_n which_o be_v all_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a virtue_n which_o come_v not_o into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o none_o but_o god_n only_o be_v perfect_o just_a and_o true_a and_o no_o body_n can_v glory_v in_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n that_o he_o possess_v without_o have_v a_o disorder_a mind_n because_o these_o virtue_n be_v no_o way_n in_o the_o person_n but_o in_o god_n alone_o who_o impart_v they_o to_o who_o he_o please_v and_o he_o who_o have_v receive_v any_o of_o these_o virtue_n ought_v to_o glorify_v god_n and_o not_o to_o glory_v in_o himself_o for_o they_o as_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o do_v not_o glory_n in_o myself_o and_o i_o do_v not_o fear_v that_o any_o body_n can_v prove_v that_o i_o ascribe_v any_o perfection_n or_o virtue_n any_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o myself_o for_o god_n have_v give_v i_o too_o much_o of_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n to_o do_v this_o have_v make_v i_o see_v clear_o that_o all_o good_a come_v from_o god_n and_o all_o evil_a from_o man_n and_o from_o the_o devil_n which_o two_o creature_n be_v equal_o withdraw_v from_o god_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a be_v fall_v into_o all_o sort_n of_o evil._n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v proceed_v from_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o man_n but_o evil_n and_o sin_n for_o this_o cause_n a_o man_n can_v have_v no_o occasion_n of_o glory_v in_o himself_o for_o his_o virtue_n which_o be_v not_o he_o nor_o at_o his_o disposal_n and_o therefore_o bucchardus_fw-la have_v say_v most_o injurious_o in_o his_o book_n that_o i_o esteem_v myself_o more_o than_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n etc._n etc._n of_o who_o i_o do_v not_o know_v to_o what_o degree_n of_o grace_n they_o arrive_v that_o i_o shall_v compare_v they_o to_o the_o grace_n that_o god_n have_v impart_v to_o i_o i_o know_v well_o that_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a creature_n subject_a to_o many_o misery_n and_o infirmity_n which_o make_v i_o often_o humble_a myself_o before_o god_n and_o man_n but_o i_o well_o know_v also_o
that_o god_n dwell_v in_o my_o heart_n by_o his_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o he_o make_v i_o govern_v all_o my_o action_n by_o the_o square_n of_o these_o virtue_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n to_o i_o that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o guide_v i_o since_o the_o devil_n and_o nature_n have_v nothing_o of_o these_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v a_o sure_a testimony_n that_o a_o soul_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n than_o when_o it_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n of_o god_n i_o imagine_v if_o bucchardus_fw-la hear_v that_o i_o say_v i_o have_v the_o truth_n 209._o righteousness_n and_o charity_n of_o moses_n he_o will_v condemn_v i_o more_o than_o ever_o have_v do_v it_o so_o often_o through_o his_o book_n though_o i_o have_v not_o there_o speak_v open_o of_o the_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v give_v i_o but_o the_o be_v condemn_v by_o so_o imperfect_a a_o man_n can_v do_v no_o hurt_n to_o my_o soul_n for_o god_n know_v it_o be_v he_o who_o command_v i_o to_o do_v this_o and_o it_o matter_n little_a whether_o it_o please_v or_o displease_v man_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o i_o when_o it_o please_v god_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o i_o have_v the_o same_o degree_n of_o the_o virtue_n righteousness_n and_o charity_n that_o moses_n have_v for_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v to_o i_o how_o much_o of_o they_o he_o impart_v to_o he_o but_o i_o will_v only_o say_v that_o my_o soul_n be_v possess_v in_o proportion_n with_o the_o same_o charity_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n that_o moses_n have_v but_o if_o he_o have_v a_o pound_n of_o each_o of_o these_o virtue_n and_o i_o a_o ounce_n only_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o know_v neither_o will_v i_o ask_v for_o the_o virtue_n of_o another_o do_v not_o concern_v i_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o that_o i_o be_v faithful_a in_o what_o be_v commit_v to_o i_o if_o god_n have_v give_v i_o his_o divine_a love_n i_o must_v do_v all_o my_o action_n and_o form_v all_o my_o intention_n for_o this_o love_n without_o seek_v in_o any_o thing_n my_o own_o or_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o man_n and_o if_o god_n have_v give_v i_o his_o righteousness_n i_o must_v exercise_v this_o virtue_n equal_o in_o thing_n great_a and_o little_a according_a to_o my_o employ_v do_v always_o just_o to_o every_o one_o even_o to_o my_o enemy_n and_o god_n have_v so_o plant_v this_o righteousness_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o can_v suffer_v injustice_n towards_o the_o beast_n far_o less_o towards_o any_o person_n and_o the_o truth_n that_o god_n have_v impart_v to_o i_o be_v so_o root_v in_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o suffer_v for_o it_o all_o sort_n of_o persecution_n and_o though_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o i_o to_o suffer_v so_o much_o for_o have_v tell_v the_o truth_n which_o god_n command_v i_o i_o can_v cease_v to_o do_v it_o for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n than_o man._n as_o to_o the_o accusation_n of_o pride_n etc._n for_o say_v that_o she_o underderstood_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o have_v read_v they_o that_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o father_n that_o they_o understand_v what_o man_n have_v need_v of_o then_o that_o god_n now_o reveal_v the_o secret_n which_o he_o will_v then_o have_v keep_v to_o be_v hide_v that_o the_o prophet_n have_v indeed_o declare_v all_o that_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v but_o neither_o they_o themselves_o nor_o any_o other_o understand_v their_o say_n that_o all_o this_o be_v speak_v without_o blasphemous_a pride_n appear_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o discourse_n and_o the_o compare_v it_o with_o all_o her_o write_n that_o the_o prophet_n have_v vision_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v which_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o perfect_o understand_v can_v be_v deny_v that_o god_n may_v give_v a_o full_a understanding_n of_o they_o near_o the_o time_n of_o their_o accomplishment_n be_v no_o absurd_a nor_o impossible_a thing_n that_o he_o have_v be_v please_v so_o to_o do_v to_o this_o virgin_n all_o her_o write_n do_v testify_v that_o she_o declare_v this_o without_o pride_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o all_o her_o write_n so_o in_o that_o very_a place_n cite_v 137._o where_o she_o say_v yes_o sir_n i_o may_v say_v it_o with_o confusion_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o communicate_v his_o secret_n to_o i_o which_o he_o have_v hide_v from_o the_o wise_a and_o great_a of_o the_o earth_n if_o such_o have_v be_v his_o will_n who_o can_v reprove_v it_o or_o find_v fault_n with_o that_o which_o he_o find_v good_a be_v not_o he_o the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o which_o he_o will_v he_o can_v do_v without_o man_n be_v able_a to_o contradict_v it_o for_o no_o body_n be_v capable_a of_o give_v law_n to_o he_o he_o be_v as_o powerful_a as_o just_o and_o good_a let_v we_o only_o adore_v his_o design_n though_o i_o be_v eu●n_v the_o most_o wicked_a creature_n in_o the_o world_n he_o may_v serve_v himself_o of_o i_o in_o what_o please_v he_o and_o then_o may_v damn_v i_o in_o the_o end_n if_o i_o have_v merit_v it_o all_o thing_n be_v subject_n to_o he_o all_o must_v obey_v he_o the_o infernal_a power_n as_o well_o as_o the_o celestial_a and_o terrestrial_a nothing_o can_v resist_v his_o almighty_a arm_n i_o must_v submit_v if_o god_n will_v declare_v his_o marvel_n by_o i_o i_o can_v hinder_v he_o if_o he_o will_v speak_v by_o a_o stone_n or_o wood_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v with_o respect_n and_o as_o to_o the_o expression_n in_o one_o of_o her_o letter_n 43._o wherein_o she_o call_v herself_o a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n for_o which_o the_o anabaptist_n or_o mennonist_n accuse_v she_o of_o blasphemous_a pride_n she_o unanswerable_o vindicate_v herself_o i_o do_v not_o wonder_v say_v she_o that_o those_o mennonist_n be_v scandalize_v at_o it_o for_o they_o do_v not_o know_v from_o what_o fund_z it_o be_v take_v and_o while_o they_o think_v i_o be_o lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o they_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v scandalize_v at_o the_o simple_a truth_n with_o which_o i_o express_v my_o sentiment_n they_o think_v i_o will_v do_v better_a to_o study_v humble_a word_n to_o speak_v sober_o in_o what_o relate_v to_o i_o and_o that_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o tell_v so_o open_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n communicate_v to_o i_o for_o they_o practise_v the_o quite_o contrary_a to_o my_o sentiment_n and_o yet_o think_v they_o possess_v the_o fine_a virtue_n they_o have_v for_o a_o maxim_n to_o learn_v to_o speak_v humble_o and_o have_v for_o rule_n to_o be_v simple_o apparel_v to_o be_v strict_o unite_v to_o their_o party_n and_o not_o to_o converse_v nor_o drink_v or_o eat_v with_o those_o who_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o it_o and_o far_o less_o to_o assist_v they_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o what_o god_n have_v plant_v in_o my_o soul_n to_o study_v to_o speak_v humble_o of_o one_o self_n have_v a_o proud_a heart_n be_v a_o great_a pride_n accompany_v with_o deceit_n and_o lie_v the_o pride_n consist_v in_o desire_v to_o be_v think_v humble_a before_o man_n by_o speak_v humble_o the_o lie_v consist_v in_o say_v often_o that_o which_o be_v false_a for_o he_o who_o say_v he_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v no_o good_a in_o he_o be_v sometime_o so_o proud_a at_o the_o bottom_n that_o he_o can_v endure_v that_o another_o shall_v have_v so_o mean_v thought_n of_o he_o and_o will_v be_v ill_o content_a to_o hear_v some_o one_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o virtue_n or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n do_v you_o not_o remember_v sir_n that_o some_o of_o those_o learned_a person_n ask_v you_o if_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o regenerate_v in_o jesus_n christ_n while_o none_o of_o their_o action_n do_v discover_v this_o regeneration_n for_o we_o see_v they_o as_o much_o wed_v to_o earthly_a thing_n as_o other_o man_n for_o they_o be_v well_o please_v to_o be_v honour_v and_o serve_v and_o esteem_v by_o every_o body_n if_o they_o be_v regenerate_v all_o these_o desire_n will_v be_v dead_a in_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o poverty_n suffering_n humility_n and_o charity_n will_v effectual_o live_v in_o their_o soul_n for_o regeneration_n consist_v in_o die_v to_o one_o self_n to_o live_v to_o god_n and_o if_o they_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o world_n they_o wuold_v seek_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o and_o no_o long_o those_o which_o be_v on_o earth_n and_o yet_o they_o who_o be_v sink_v into_o the_o traffic_n of_o the_o world_n and_o gain_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o will_v have_v it_o be_v believe_v that_o
they_o be_v regenerate_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n though_o all_o their_o action_n be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o those_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n for_o though_o they_o speak_v humble_o and_o have_v a_o humble_a show_n and_o gesture_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o very_a proud_a heart_n and_o then_o they_o will_v have_v it_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v regenerate_v and_o will_v take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n if_o i_o will_v say_v they_o be_v not_o they_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a pride_n in_o they_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v regenerate_v than_o in_o i_o to_o say_v that_o i_o be_o a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n for_o he_o who_o be_v regenerate_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n live_v no_o long_o but_o jesus_n christ_n live_v in_o he_o and_o a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o frail_a creature_n who_o may_v yet_o sin_n and_o undo_v herself_o it_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n to_o be_v a_o mother_n or_o father_n of_o true_a believer_n as_o to_o our_o own_o perfection_n this_o give_v we_o no_o more_o if_o god_n give_v we_o sufficient_a light_n for_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o own_o life_n in_o particular_a or_o if_o he_o give_v we_o of_o it_o in_o abundance_n to_o enlighten_v other_o also_o this_o will_v not_o add_v one_o degree_n of_o glory_n to_o our_o soul_n but_o in_o as_o far_o as_o we_o have_v be_v faithful_a dispenser_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o to_o be_v only_o the_o matter_n of_o a_o father_n or_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n a_o statue_n or_o image_n of_o wood_n or_o stone_n will_v serve_v as_o well_o as_o a_o live_a person_n for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o thing_n he_o can_v as_o well_o speak_v by_o the_o organ_n of_o a_o statue_n of_o wood_n or_o stone_n as_o he_o do_v heretofore_o by_o cloud_n by_o a_o burn_a bush_n by_o thunder_n all_o these_o matter_n can_v boast_v themselves_o because_o god_n operate_v by_o they_o for_o he_o have_v equal_o power_n over_o all_o thing_n and_o make_v use_v of_o such_o instrument_n as_o he_o please_v if_o he_o will_v beget_v true_a believer_n by_o my_o mouth_n he_o can_v do_v it_o as_o well_o as_o by_o a_o image_n carve_v out_o of_o wood._n the_o mennonist_n therefore_o be_v very_o unjust_a to_o take_v scandal_n at_o the_o work_n of_o god_n after_o i_o have_v explain_v to_o they_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o that_o word_n a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n that_o i_o understand_v that_o all_o those_o who_o god_n shall_v make_v use_n of_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o other_o shall_v be_v the_o true_a father_n and_o mother_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v become_v true_a believer_n by_o their_o mean_n and_o that_o it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o st._n paul_n say_v i_o have_v beget_v you_o the_o apostle_n know_v well_o that_o he_o have_v not_o power_n to_o beget_v child_n to_o god_n but_o he_o perceive_v well_o that_o god_n give_v he_o light_a in_o his_o understanding_n and_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o charity_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o that_o by_o all_o these_o thing_n many_o will_v be_v regenerate_v by_o become_v true_a child_n of_o god_n and_o die_v to_o the_o flesh_n to_o live_v to_o the_o spirit_n i_o have_v explain_v this_o word_n of_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n 58._o by_o say_v that_o god_n by_o my_o organ_n will_v give_v his_o light_n to_o man_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v see_v their_o darkness_n and_o receive_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n this_o light_n with_o which_o he_o will_v produce_v true_a believer_n be_v not_o i_o though_o he_o produce_v they_o by_o my_o mouth_n my_o hand_n or_o my_o spirit_n but_o it_o be_v god_n even_o as_o our_o body_n be_v not_o our_o parent_n but_o of_o god_n for_o they_o can_v make_v one_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n yet_o god_n call_v they_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o command_v to_o obey_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n this_o one_o instance_n of_o a_o expression_n so_o high_o exaggerated_a former_o and_o of_o late_a which_o i_o think_v she_o vindicate_v as_o to_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o equitable_a reader_n upon_o the_o supposition_n of_o her_o be_v endue_v with_o light_n by_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o this_o instance_n i_o say_v may_v serve_v for_o a_o sample_n to_o show_v how_o unjust_a man_n be_v in_o form_v character_n of_o person_n from_o shred_n of_o expression_n gather_v here_o and_o there_o and_o put_v altogether_o without_o let_v the_o world_n see_v the_o context_n of_o they_o the_o main_a scope_n of_o they_o or_o the_o sense_n and_o mean_v give_v of_o they_o by_o the_o person_n concern_v and_o how_o high_o thereby_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o truth_n murder_n the_o reputation_n of_o such_o impose_v upon_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n and_o beget_v and_o become_v real_a father_n of_o hatred_n and_o aversion_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o spirit_n lord_n open_a their_o eye_n and_o lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n as_o we_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o take_v up_o with_o false_a virtue_n ourselves_o 53._o so_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v rash_o of_o other_o and_o to_o accuse_v they_o of_o pride_n of_o which_o we_o ourselves_o be_v more_o guilty_a thus_o the_o jew_n treat_v jesus_n christ_n abraham_n say_v they_o be_v dead_a and_o the_o propthe_n and_o thou_o say_v if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_v he_o shall_v never_o taste_v of_o death_n be_v thou_o great_a than_o our_o father_n abraham_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o the_o prophet_n be_v dead_a who_o make_v thou_o thyself_o we_o see_v the_o saint_n have_v often_o speak_v well_o of_o themselves_o and_o yet_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o humility_n 100_o thus_o david_n say_v of_o himself_o i_o have_v more_o understanding_n than_o all_o my_o teacher_n i_o understand_v more_o than_o the_o ancient_n thus_o s._n paul_n throughout_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v often_o well_o of_o himself_o propose_v himself_o and_o his_o virtue_n for_o a_o pattern_n and_o example_n so_o that_o you_o see_v one_o may_v speak_v well_o of_o themselves_o and_o not_o from_o a_o spirit_n of_o pride_n or_o self-glorying_a as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n david_n s._n paul_n and_o other_o saint_n have_v do_v false_a humility_n speak_v mean_o of_o one_o self_n to_o cover_v its_o secret_a pride_n and_o to_o get_v the_o reputation_n of_o be_v humble_a true_a humility_n speak_v the_o truth_n in_o simplicity_n whether_o of_o one_o self_n or_o other_o without_o regard_v that_o the_o world_n will_v censure_v it_o as_o a_o effect_n of_o pride_n and_o vain-glory._n by_o this_o spirit_n the_o saint_n be_v act_v from_o this_o principle_n a._n b._n speak_v thus_o of_o herself_o and_o that_o i_o dare_v say_v with_o less_o pride_n and_o vainglory_n than_o other_o have_v write_v against_o she_o xxiv_o deny_v some_o accuse_v she_o of_o great_a injustice_n in_o affix_v doctrine_n sentiment_n and_o opinion_n upon_o party_n and_o person_n which_o they_o do_v not_o own_o she_o say_v they_o make_v man_n more_o guilty_a than_o they_o be_v she_o impute_v to_o particular_a person_n to_o doctor_n and_o even_o to_o whole_a party_n sentiment_n vice_n and_o sin_n which_o they_o have_v not_o and_o of_o which_o all_o think_v they_o innocent_a with_o this_o also_o the_o enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v reproach_v he_o that_o he_o false_o impute_v to_o they_o evil_n of_o which_o they_o be_v innocent_a as_o murder_n thou_o have_v a_o devil_n who_o seek_v to_o kill_v thou_o 20._o jesus_n christ_n tell_v that_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v according_a to_o appearance_n but_o righteous_a judgement_n in_o a_o unregenerate_a state_n man_n do_v not_o know_v themselves_o but_o they_o think_v they_o be_v what_o they_o be_v not_o and_o what_o they_o true_o be_v that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v and_o they_o whole_o disclaim_v it_o the_o jew_n not_o doubt_n be_v astonish_v when_o the_o prophet_n impute_v to_o they_o atheistical_a profane_a and_o epicurean_a sentiment_n as_o the_o deny_v of_o divine_a providence_n and_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o make_v their_o chief_a happiness_n to_o consist_v in_o be_v wicked_a no_o doubt_v they_o will_v cry_v out_o against_o they_o as_o calumniator_n and_o impute_v to_o they_o sentiment_n quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v it_o be_v like_o this_o be_v not_o their_o doctrine_n nor_o the_o sentiment_n according_a to_o which_o they_o reason_v far_o less_o the_o subject_a of_o their_o public_a instruction_n and_o yet_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n reproach_n they_o with_o it_o as_o if_o they_o have_v teach_v it_o in_o express_a term_n 15._o ezekiel_n say_v of_o they_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n see_v not_o
have_v create_v the_o earth_n and_o so_o many_o reasonable_a creature_n only_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o adherent_n if_o he_o do_v not_o renew_v the_o earth_n and_o make_v it_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n for_o his_o glory_n and_o as_o to_o man_n propagation_n of_o his_o like_a to_o all_o eternity_n if_o man_n have_v continue_v pure_a and_o holy_a i_o be_o sure_a this_o will_v not_o have_v be_v think_v a_o sensual_a state_n a_o power_n to_o produce_v a_o creature_n that_o be_v capable_a of_o love_v and_o enjoy_v god_n be_v a_o astonish_a perfection_n only_a concupiscence_n have_v now_o so_o pollute_v our_o heart_n that_o we_o can_v think_v of_o this_o but_o our_o imagination_n present_o defile_v it_o and_o we_o join_v it_o to_o the_o sensual_a idea_n that_o sin_n and_o lust_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n and_o can_v conceive_v how_o the_o one_o can_v be_v without_o the_o other_o judge_v of_o thing_n according_a to_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o we_o present_o cry_v out_o a_o mahometan_a paradise_n which_o true_o discover_v only_o the_o filthiness_n and_o corruption_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o not_o the_o impurity_n of_o the_o sentiment_n but_o only_o that_o to_o the_o impure_a nothing_o be_v pure_a if_o there_o be_v a_o creature_n perfect_o pure_a and_o holy_a and_o if_o god_n endue_v it_o with_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v its_o like_a this_o production_n will_v be_v no_o act_n of_o concupiscence_n but_o a_o act_n of_o the_o most_o ardent_a love_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o state_n she_o say_v the_o saint_n shall_v be_v in_o to_o all_o eternity_n which_o whatever_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v no_o mahometan_a paradise_n and_o as_o there_o be_v remarkable_a place_n of_o scripture_n cite_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o so_o the_o reason_n she_o assign_v be_v very_o weighty_a to_o wit_n that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a and_o his_o gift_n without_o out_o repentance_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o production_n to_o all_o eternity_n a_o very_a small_a number_n of_o man_n will_v bless_v he_o for_o river_n whereas_o so_o many_o reasonable_a creature_n be_v become_v adherent_n to_o the_o devil_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o that_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o bless_a multiply_v eternal_o as_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o miserable_a have_v multiply_v temporal_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n and_o why_o shall_v we_o think_v it_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o angel_n do_v thus_o produce_v their_o like_a to_o all_o eternity_n we_o see_v here_o in_o this_o visible_a world_n that_o all_o creature_n who_o have_v any_o degree_n of_o life_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a be_v endue_v with_o this_o power_n of_o produce_v their_o like_a all_o the_o plant_n and_o tree_n all_o the_o beast_n bird_n fish_n and_o infect_v and_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n man_n both_z as_o to_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o have_v be_v make_v appear_v and_o you_o know_v the_o rule_n of_o analogy_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n as_o to_o all_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n and_o therefore_o unless_o we_o shall_v suppose_v god_n to_o act_v unlike_o himself_o as_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o live_a being_n we_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n that_o the_o nature_n and_o analogy_n of_o thing_n do_v suggest_v to_o conclude_v that_o angel_n also_o do_v produce_v their_o like_a to_o all_o eternity_n xxviii_o conclusion_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o foresee_v all_o the_o prejudices_fw-la that_o people_n may_v conceive_v or_o that_o may_v be_v suggest_v to_o they_o against_o the_o write_n and_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n far_o less_o to_o answer_v they_o all_o particular_o in_o this_o apology_n i_o have_v consider_v only_o the_o most_o remarkable_a of_o those_o which_o do_v usual_o occur_v and_o have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n set_v down_o her_o own_o answer_n in_o this_o the_o former_a and_o the_o follow_a part_n which_o though_o it_o have_v make_v it_o the_o long_o yet_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v make_v it_o the_o more_o useful_a i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a to_o copy_n for_o i_o write_v only_a narrative_n and_o not_o original_n if_o other_o write_v original_n when_o they_o pretend_v to_o write_v narrative_n i_o shall_v not_o envy_v they_o i_o be_o only_o sorry_a that_o some_o be_v at_o such_o pain_n to_o deter_v man_n from_o peruse_v those_o write_n which_o may_v be_v most_o useful_a to_o help_v they_o in_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n if_o they_o will_v not_o make_v that_o good_a use_n of_o they_o themselves_o they_o need_v not_o hinder_v other_o from_o profit_v by_o they_o thousand_o perhaps_o will_v be_v awaken_v to_o a_o deep_a sense_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o mortify_v and_o die_v to_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n who_o will_v never_o be_v stumble_v at_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o carp_n at_o but_o pass_v they_o over_o whatever_o be_v her_o singular_a sentiment_n such_o as_o this_o last_o mention_v you_o may_v look_v upon_o they_o all_o if_o you_o please_v as_o dream_n and_o romance_n but_o since_o the_o necessary_a duty_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o plain_a way_n to_o eternal_a life_n be_v so_o clear_o so_o forcible_o and_o so_o divine_o inculcate_v and_o press_v in_o all_o those_o write_n and_o no_o stress_n lay_v on_o those_o other_o thing_n o_o that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n soul_n and_o our_o own_o salvation_n may_v constrain_v we_o to_o the_o serious_a practice_n of_o they_o ourselves_o and_o make_v we_o careful_o to_o avoid_v the_o be_v a_o offence_n and_o stumbling-block_n to_o other_o o_o si_fw-la tantam_fw-la ad_fw-la hiberent_fw-la diligentiam_fw-la ad_fw-la extirpanda_fw-la vitia_fw-la &_o virtutes_fw-la inserendas_fw-la sicuti_fw-la ad_fw-la movendas_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la tunc_fw-la non_fw-la fierent_fw-la tanta_fw-la mala_fw-la &_o scandala_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la tho._n à_fw-fr kemp._n de_fw-fr imitat_fw-la christ_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o n._n 5._o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o part._n a_o apology_n for_o m._n ant._n bourignon_n part_n iii_o contain_v the_o evidence_n which_o she_o bring_v that_o she_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o her_o answer_n to_o the_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o same_o to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o dissertation_n of_o dr._n de_fw-fr heyde_n on_o the_o same_o subject_a i._o age._n in_o the_o age_n wherein_o we_o live_v there_o need_v no_o great_a prejudice_n against_o a_o person_n his_o sentiment_n and_o write_n than_o for_o he_o to_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v immediate_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o reject_v all_o he_o can_v say_v without_o any_o far_a enquiry_n we_o present_o conclude_v he_o be_v brainsick_a hypochondriack_n melancholy_a and_o craze_v at_o least_o as_o to_o that_o point_n however_o rational_a he_o may_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n or_o otherwise_o that_o he_o be_v a_o knave_n who_o design_n to_o put_v a_o trick_n upon_o mankind_n and_o that_o all_o who_o esteem_v he_o be_v as_o much_o fool_n or_o knave_n as_o he_o ii_o reason_n the_o wise_a and_o the_o learned_a of_o the_o world_n and_o from_o they_o the_o generality_n of_o man_n be_v incline_v to_o think_v so_o upon_o different_a ground_n and_o principle_n 1._o revelation_n some_o disbelieve_v all_o revelation_n from_o god_n and_o conclude_v that_o as_o all_o other_o creature_n have_v natural_a power_n give_v they_o to_o guide_v they_o to_o the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o their_o be_v so_o have_v man_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o necessary_a for_o he_o to_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o his_o be_v but_o only_o the_o right_a use_n and_o improvement_n of_o his_o reason_n 2._o apostle_n other_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o shortness_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o humane_a reason_n to_o lead_v man_n to_o happiness_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o necessity_n of_o divine_a revelation_n but_o then_o god_n have_v speak_v at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o diverse_a manner_n unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o these_o last_o day_n by_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o all_o this_o be_v consign_v in_o write_v to_o be_v a_o stand_a rule_n to_o all_o generation_n and_o confirm_v by_o most_o satisfy_a evidence_n to_o be_v from_o god_n they_o conclude_v that_o we_o must_v not_o look_v for_o any_o to_o be_v thus_o immediate_o inspire_v and_o enlighten_v by_o god_n now_o by_o who_o he_o shall_v speak_v to_o we_o and_o that_o any_o who_o pretend_v to_o it_o be_v impostor_n or_o brainsick_a person_n who_o will_v needs_o ape_n what_o they_o read_v or_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o fancy_n they_o be_v such_o person_n immediate_o enlighten_v by_o god_n as_o they_o read_v of_o in_o those_o holy_a write_n and_o to_o own_o any_o now_o as_o inspire_v by_o god_n be_v to_o
to_o pure_a and_o well-disposed_a soul_n both_o under_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o second_o remedy_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o because_o of_o the_o blindness_n and_o impurity_n of_o man_n heart_n thus_o st._n augustin_n 11._o likewise_o make_v appear_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o outward_a dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v lead_v we_o to_o this_o and_o that_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o a_o good_a life_n be_v necessary_a disposition_n for_o it_o st._n john_n say_v that_o 14._o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n in_o he_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n and_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n and_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o 23._o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o he_o it_o be_v that_o love_v i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o will_v manifest_v myself_o to_o he_o and_o when_o one_o of_o his_o disciple_n ask_v how_o he_o will_v manifest_v himself_o to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o the_o world_n jesus_n say_v if_o a_o man_n love_v i_o he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o make_v our_o abode_n with_o he_o and_o the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o 14._o that_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o neither_o can_v they_o know_v they_o because_o he_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v he_o tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o 14._o they_o who_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o they_o and_o that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v none_o of_o he_o and_o that_o be_v lead_v by_o god_n spirit_n they_o be_v his_o son_n so_o that_o all_o who_o be_v true_o regenerate_v be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n v._o measure_n they_o who_o god_n employ_v for_o the_o good_a and_o salvation_n of_o other_o he_o not_o only_o endue_v they_o with_o the_o light_n and_o grace_n necessary_a for_o their_o own_o conduct_n and_o salvation_n but_o also_o with_o divine_a light_n and_o wisdom_n that_o may_v make_v they_o fit_a organ_n and_o instrument_n to_o communicate_v the_o same_o blessing_n to_o other_o this_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n vi_o corrupt_v such_o be_v the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n that_o when_o he_o have_v give_v man_n his_o law_n and_o make_v know_v to_o they_o their_o whole_a duty_n yet_o when_o they_o have_v general_o stray_v from_o it_o and_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n have_v corrupt_v their_o way_n god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o raise_v up_o extraordinary_a prophet_n to_o let_v they_o see_v how_o gross_o they_o have_v mistake_v and_o pervert_v god_n law_n to_o awaken_v and_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n and_o to_o warn_v they_o of_o god_n approach_a judgement_n vii_o 48._o the_o instrument_n that_o god_n make_v use_v of_o on_o such_o occasion_n be_v general_o person_n who_o have_v no_o worldly_a nor_o humane_a advantage_n to_o recommend_v they_o be_v neither_o learned_a nor_o great_a nor_o rich_a nor_o honourable_a nor_o wise_a in_o the_o world_n esteem_n but_o he_o choose_v the_o weak_a and_o the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o the_o mighty_a elisha_n a_o labourer_n of_o the_o ground_n amos_n a_o herdsman_n david_n a_o shepherd_n john_n and_o james_n peter_n and_o andrew_z fishermen_z matthew_n a_o publican_n simplicity_n and_o humility_n of_o heart_n be_v the_o chief_a quality_n which_o recommend_v they_o to_o his_o choice_n they_o be_v general_o despise_v reject_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o people_n of_o the_o age_n wherein_o they_o live_v above_o all_o they_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o pastor_n and_o priest_n who_o have_v the_o dexterity_n by_o their_o learning_n and_o subtlety_n to_o wrest_v and_o criticise_v upon_o their_o word_n and_o write_n and_o turn_v they_o into_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o they_o may_v make_v the_o people_n abhor_v and_o persecute_v they_o and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o follow_a age_n after_o their_o death_n that_o man_n begin_v general_o to_o esteem_v and_o honour_v they_o viii_o they_o the_o holy_a person_n thus_o inspire_v by_o god_n be_v far_o from_o despise_v his_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n these_o they_o can_v not_o contradict_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v contradict_v himself_o but_o they_o show_v people_n how_o great_o they_o stray_v from_o they_o in_o their_o life_n and_o practice_n they_o do_v not_o contemn_v his_o ordinance_n but_o they_o make_v appear_v how_o temple_n and_o all_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o god_n so_o long_o as_o they_o who_o profess_v to_o be_v his_o people_n and_o to_o worship_v he_o by_o they_o do_v live_v wicked_o and_o neglect_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n they_o be_v far_o from_o make_v any_o schism_n or_o set_v up_o a_o new_a sect_n and_o party_n but_o they_o plain_o tell_v both_o the_o people_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o pastor_n their_o sin_n and_o degeneracy_n and_o warn_v they_o to_o flee_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v ix_o they_o there_o be_v not_o want_v at_o the_o same_o time_n false_a prophet_n to_o oppose_v and_o destroy_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o true_a and_o they_o wrought_v sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o procure_v belief_n but_o the_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o one_o be_v still_o discernible_a from_o the_o paint_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o other_o by_o such_o as_o be_v true_o sincere_a themselves_o and_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n will_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o whether_o man_n speak_v of_o themselves_o they_o who_o be_v true_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n live_v as_o they_o speak_v they_o require_v not_o of_o other_o what_o they_o do_v not_o first_o themselves_z they_o do_v not_o flatter_v the_o people_n in_o their_o vice_n nor_o promise_v they_o peace_n peace_n when_o sudden_a destruction_n be_v near_o nor_o do_v they_o seek_v themselves_o x._o christ_n as_o god_n do_v thus_o immediate_o enlighten_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n some_o pure_a and_o well-disposed_a soul_n before_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o after_o his_o ascension_n so_o it_o be_v neither_o impossible_a nor_o improbable_a that_o our_o infinite_o good_a god_n shall_v show_v the_o same_o mercy_n in_o after_o age_n it_o be_v not_o against_o his_o nature_n no_o more_o than_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o send_v his_o light_n and_o heath_n through_o all_o where_o cloud_n and_o wall_n do_v not_o shut_v they_o out_o for_o his_o delight_n be_v to_o be_v with_o the_o child_n of_o men._n neither_o have_v he_o declare_v any_o where_o that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o as_o for_o the_o curse_v denounce_v revel_v 22._o 18._o against_o those_o that_o shall_v add_v to_o the_o thing_n contain_v therein_o upon_o which_o some_o understand_v as_o such_o a_o declaration_n from_o god_n as_o it_o relate_v only_o to_o that_o prophecy_n so_o it_o lay_v a_o restraint_n on_o man_n only_o and_o not_o on_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o that_o of_o deut._n 4._o 2._o 12._o 32._o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o no_o immediate_a revelation_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o mankind_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v after_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n be_v clear_o and_o full_o declare_v by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o this_o argument_n be_v good_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o divine_a revelation_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o contain_v a_o relation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o by_o jesus_n christ_n whereas_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n many_o other_o thing_n immediate_o teach_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n wherefore_o from_o the_o fullness_n clearness_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o may_v well_o infer_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o revelation_n of_o a_o new_a doctrine_n or_o a_o new_a religion_n
devil_n be_v haughty_a proud_a and_o desirous_a of_o honour_n he_o who_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n have_v a_o deference_n to_o none_o the_o sure_a mark_n to_o know_v true_a prophet_n 78._o be_v to_o remark_n if_o they_o who_o call_v themselves_o such_o be_v true_a christian_n since_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v first_o be_v this_o before_o they_o can_v be_v true_a prophet_n examine_v if_o they_o have_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a and_o if_o they_o true_o know_v god_n he_o who_o true_o know_v he_o love_v he_o and_o he_o can_v love_v he_o without_o partake_v of_o his_o divine_a quality_n and_o be_v transform_v into_o they_o as_o god_n be_v good_a righteous_a and_o true_a so_o will_v he_o be_v who_o true_o know_v and_o love_v he_o if_o we_o see_v in_o these_o prophet_n any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o goodness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n we_o must_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o he_o because_o he_o who_o be_v his_o friend_n be_v always_o transform_v into_o he_o and_o partake_v express_o of_o his_o three_o quality_n righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n bring_v they_o forth_o in_o all_o his_o work_n they_o also_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n who_o be_v not_o true_a disciple_n and_o follower_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v his_o disciple_n we_o must_v do_v as_o he_o do_v and_o to_o be_v his_o follower_n we_o must_v depend_v in_o all_o thing_n on_o god_n as_o he_o depend_v and_o be_v willing_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o neighbour_n to_o endure_v hard_a treatment_n affront_v pain_n yea_o death_n and_o if_o they_o who_o call_v themselves_o prophet_n be_v not_o possess_v with_o this_o sentiment_n they_o have_v not_o true_a charity_n be_v not_o true_a christian_n nor_o the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n you_o may_v ask_v i_o if_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o a_o true_a christian_a i_o will_v answer_v my_o belief_n may_v perhaps_o deceive_v i_o but_o if_o you_o do_v not_o observe_v in_o i_o the_o quality_n of_o charity_n the_o fruit_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n you_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v it_o for_o these_o mark_n be_v infallible_a to_o a_o true_o christian_a soul_n so_o that_o they_o who_o have_v they_o not_o or_o at_o least_o do_v not_o labour_v to_o obtain_v they_o can_v be_v call_v true_o christian_n far_o less_o prophet_n say_v what_o they_o please_v the_o affectation_n of_o desire_v that_o people_n believe_v they_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o they_o seek_v their_o own_o glory_n for_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n affect_v nothing_o and_o force_n nothing_o he_o only_o declare_v his_o commission_n to_o he_o to_o who_o he_o be_v send_v as_o a_o messenger_n that_o have_v no_o concern_v in_o the_o content_n of_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o carry_v therefore_o they_o use_v to_o make_v themselves_o be_v believe_v the_o desire_v they_o have_v that_o their_o prophecy_n may_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o their_o eagerness_n to_o act_v in_o their_o design_n show_v that_o they_o seek_v their_o own_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n act_v always_o with_o meekness_n and_o indifferency_n leave_v all_o the_o success_n of_o his_o commission_n to_o god_n and_o he_o be_v as_o content_v with_o his_o own_o confusion_n as_o with_o his_o honour_n seek_v and_o aim_v at_o no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o have_v satisfy_v he_o who_o send_v he_o if_o those_o prophet_n be_v of_o god_n 76._o they_o will_v all_o speak_v conformable_o and_o also_o with_o constancy_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o mutability_n in_o god_n what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n he_o say_v yet_o now_o adays_o to_o the_o soul_n which_o he_o possess_v they_o can_v be_v no_o new_a prophecy_n for_o god_n have_v for●●old_v all_o from_o ancient_a time_n but_o he_o give_v now_o the_o understanding_n and_o clear_v of_o these_o ancient_a prophecy_n to_o soul_n resign_v to_o he_o neither_o do_v they_o bring_v new_a law_n or_o instruction_n because_o jesus_n christ_n have_v bring_v the_o last_o which_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o he_o teach_v all_o thing_n in_o perfection_n and_o what_o man_n ought_v to_o do_v and_o avoid_v that_o they_o may_v return_v to_o a_o dependence_n upon_o god_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v stray_v and_o this_o so_o perfect_o that_o he_o have_v perfect_o complete_v all_o the_o law_n and_o all_o save_a instruction_n so_o that_o if_o any_o will_v teach_v another_o thing_n he_o be_v a_o seducer_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o when_o one_o come_v from_o god_n to_o awaken_v man_n that_o they_o may_v consider_v how_o they_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o how_o far_o they_o be_v estrange_v from_o a_o dependence_n upon_o god_n make_v this_o appear_v to_o they_o by_o eternal_a truth_n and_o by_o so_o clear_a reason_n that_o all_o man_n of_o sound_a judgement_n may_v comprehend_v it_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v because_o they_o be_v good_a in_o themselves_o and_o can_v but_o profit_v those_o who_o believe_v they_o though_o they_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o false_a prophet_n yea_o of_o the_o devil_n himself_o we_o ought_v not_o then_o to_o stick_v so_o much_o at_o examine_v the_o instrument_n from_o whence_o those_o truth_n come_v to_o know_v if_o it_o be_v true_a and_o good_a and_o aim_v at_o god_n glory_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n for_o god_n make_v use_v sometime_o of_o person_n who_o be_v imperfect_a and_o vicious_a yea_o of_o the_o devil_n himself_o to_o declare_v to_o we_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v not_o pretend_v ignorance_n or_o blame_n god_n for_o our_o damnation_n as_o be_v want_v to_o warn_v we_o he_o therefore_o sometime_o make_v beast_n wicked_a and_o possess_v person_n to_o speak_v that_o they_o may_v manifest_v his_o will_n to_o we_o but_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o make_v reckon_v of_o the_o beast_n devil_n and_o wicked_a person_n but_o profit_n by_o the_o thing_n that_o god_n make_v know_v to_o we_o by_o they_o when_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v good_a and_o true_a if_o a_o soul_n be_v true_o possess_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 3._o he_o discover_v himself_o sufficient_o by_o his_o operation_n he_o bring_v forth_o there_o always_o his_o fruit_n he_o bring_v thither_o infallible_o his_o gift_n by_o which_o we_o may_v true_o know_v that_o it_o be_v he_o though_o he_o be_v a_o invisible_a spirit_n he_o be_v see_v and_o sensible_o comprehend_v by_o his_o visible_a work_n and_o by_o the_o operation_n he_o work_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o understanding_n of_o he_o who_o possess_v he_o which_o may_v be_v clear_o see_v in_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o person_n who_o say_v he_o possess_v he_o for_o he_o must_v be_v charitable_a joyful_a peaceable_a patient_n persevere_v good_a gentle_a meek_n faithful_a modest_a continent_n and_o chaste_a the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v be_v in_o a_o soul_n without_o produce_v those_o fruit_n no_o more_o than_o the_o sun_n can_v be_v without_o give_v light_n to_o the_o earth_n which_o feel_v 〈◊〉_d heat_n and_o splendour_n though_o it_o do_v not_o comprehend_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o star_n there_o may_v be_v fruit_n in_o the_o soul_n resemble_v these_o which_o be_v only_a sensuality_n and_o self-love_n and_o moral_a virtue_n though_o they_o may_v take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o be_v vain_a because_o they_o respect_v only_o the_o present_a time_n they_o who_o do_v not_o possess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v discern_v if_o he_o reside_v in_o another_o but_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o be_v know_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n and_o ignorance_n if_o we_o will_v discover_v that_o a_o soul_n have_v true_a charity_n we_o must_v see_v if_o its_o work_n be_v accompany_v with_o the_o condition_n of_o that_o charity_n describe_v by_o st._n paul_n that_o we_o may_v give_v credit_n to_o the_o say_n of_o those_o who_o say_v they_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 13._o we_o must_v first_o see_v if_o what_o they_o say_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v uniform_a through_o all_o he_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o ancient_a law_n and_o thereafter_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o do_v soul_n live_v at_o present_a upon_o earth_n there_o must_v be_v a_o conformity_n in_o substance_n between_o all_o those_o inspiration_n if_o they_o proceed_v from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n all_o be_v but_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o which_o there_o can_v never_o be_v any_o deceit_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n
be_v unchangeable_a always_o consistent_a with_o himself_o and_o no_o body_n can_v be_v mistake_v in_o follow_v what_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n even_o to_o though_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o wicked_a person_n yea_o by_o the_o devil_n himself_o but_o if_o some_o one_o declare_v some_o particular_a thing_n respect_v the_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o any_o they_o must_v see_v from_o whence_o this_o knowledge_n come_v if_o such_o have_v it_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o must_v believe_v it_o as_o the_o scripture_n or_o else_o they_o be_v in_o hazard_n of_o be_v forsake_v by_o god_n for_o despise_v the_o warning_n which_o he_o often_o give_v we_o by_o some_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n who_o he_o make_v use_v of_o to_o declare_v his_o will_n to_o those_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v it_o so_o particular_o themselves_o as_o he_o do_v to_o david_n by_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n to_o declare_v his_o sin_n to_o he_o of_o which_o he_o be_v become_v insensible_a and_o so_o many_o other_o who_o he_o have_v withdraw_v from_o the_o way_n to_o hell_n by_o the_o warning_n of_o some_o soul_n enlighten_v by_o he_o as_o he_o do_v sometime_o yet_o at_o present_a a_o true_a prophet_n never_o seek_v himself_o ●●_o desire_v not_o to_o please_v man_n aim_n at_o nothing_o but_o to_o satisfy_v the_o will_n of_o god_n though_o it_o cost_v he_o his_o life_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o commission_n without_o fear_n or_o respect_n of_o any_o he_o have_v no_o soft_a word_n that_o flatter_v the_o ear_n but_o hard_o one_o that_o pierce_v heart_n he_o declare_v the_o truth_n that_o reprove_v man_n more_o willing_o than_o those_o which_o commend_v they_o a_o true_a prophet_n rejoice_v more_o to_o be_v hate_v than_o love_v because_o he_o see_v than_o he_o be_v more_o conformable_a to_o his_o master_n who_o in_o do_v good_a be_v hate_v and_o persecute_v by_o men._n there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o certain_a mark_n than_o the_o reproach_n and_o contradiction_n of_o man_n whereby_o to_o discern_v a_o true_a prophet_n from_o a_o false_a for_o falsehood_n always_o flatter_v and_o so_o be_v love_v by_o the_o people_n who_o be_v willing_o flatter_v the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v have_v no_o regard_n to_o what_o please_v or_o displease_v 21._o but_o to_o what_o be_v pure_a truth_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o if_o there_o remain_v any_o doubt_n if_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o speak_v by_o a_o person_n who_o say_v so_o we_o must_v try_v if_o that_o person_n possess_v the_o twelve_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n his_o seven_o gift_n and_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n so_o you_o shall_v see_v visible_o in_o they_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o his_o infallible_a operation_n thus_o you_o see_v what_o excellent_a and_o true_a mark_n and_o character_n she_o give_v whereby_o we_o may_v try_v whether_o any_o be_v true_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o not_o and_o the_o more_o her_o doctrine_n life_n and_o spirit_n be_v inquire_v into_o by_o the_o lover_n of_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n the_o more_o they_o will_v abide_v this_o touchstone_n and_o it_o will_v still_o the_o more_o clear_o appear_v that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o the_o gospel_n her_o life_n and_o spirit_n a_o transcript_n of_o it_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v write_v in_o her_o heart_n from_o whence_o her_o doctrine_n come_v as_o from_o a_o fountain_n of_o live_v water_n spring_v up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o break_a cistern_n of_o humane_a learning_n conversation_n study_n and_o book_n and_o that_o her_o word_n be_v sharp_a and_o pierce_a search_v into_o the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n and_o far_o from_o soothe_v and_o flatter_v the_o corruption_n of_o men._n xviii_o religion_n m._n pascal_n have_v give_v it_o as_o a_o distinguish_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o contradiction_n to_o all_o other_o religion_n of_o the_o world_n as_o a_o argument_n of_o its_o divine_a authority_n and_o original_a that_o it_o make_v charity_n or_o the_o love_n of_o god_n its_o principal_a end_n and_o man_n chief_a duty_n which_o no_o other_o religion_n do_v and_o i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v give_v as_o a_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a._n b._n its_o be_v a_o true_a representation_n of_o christianity_n in_o contradiction_n to_o most_o of_o the_o system_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o have_v be_v advance_v in_o this_o last_o age_n of_o the_o world_n that_o she_o make_v charity_n or_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o great_a end_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o the_o precept_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o necessary_a mean_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o that_o end_n and_o when_o this_o be_v so_o clear_o discover_v and_o represent_v to_o we_o by_o a_o illiterate_a child_n without_o the_o use_n of_o any_o humane_a help_n and_o our_o false_a gloss_n whereby_o we_o have_v pervert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v lay_v open_a to_o we_o to_o ascribe_v this_o to_o natural_a judgement_n heat_v of_o fancy_n any_o humane_a or_o diabolical_a mean_n or_o to_o think_v to_o confound_v it_o with_o our_o buffonery_n and_o critic_n be_v a_o spiritual_a infatuation_n like_o that_o of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n xix_o 11._o now_o all_o that_o have_v be_v or_o can_v be_v oppose_v to_o those_o evidence_n of_o a._n b._n her_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v under_o these_o two_o head_n viz._n it_o be_v either_o affirm_v that_o these_o mark_n and_o character_n be_v not_o sufficient_a evidence_n even_o though_o she_o have_v they_o or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o all_o belong_v to_o she_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o then_o her_o own_o vindication_n of_o herself_o in_o answer_v some_o prejudices_fw-la relate_v to_o these_o head_n first_o then_o they_o object_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o her_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n unless_o she_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o she_o say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a ignorance_n to_o desire_v to_o see_v miracle_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o a_o soul_n be_v possess_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o devil_n at_o this_o time_n can_v easy_o do_v wonder_n jesus_n christ_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o in_o the_o last_o time_n many_o false_a prophet_n will_v arise_v that_o shall_v do_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o we_o live_v now_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n they_o who_o ask_v now_o for_o miracle_n deserve_v to_o be_v seduce_v by_o satan_n for_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o they_o since_o god_n be_v not_o to_o send_v into_o the_o world_n a_o new_a doctrine_n the_o gospel_n law_n be_v the_o last_o and_o most_o perfect_a of_o all_o law_n nothing_o new_a will_v come_v to_o instruct_v man_n except_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o gospel_n law_n which_o be_v sufficient_o confirm_v by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o need_v then_o for_o the_o hardness_n of_o man_n heart_n to_o work_v outward_a miracle_n because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n for_o those_o person_n sign_n be_v wrought_v that_o be_v visible_a to_o their_o sense_n but_o now_o man_n be_v sufficient_o confirm_v in_o the_o gospel_n law_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n incredulous_a in_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o miracle_n will_v serve_v to_o no_o purpose_n now_o since_o nothing_o be_v teach_v but_o what_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v and_o this_o be_v believe_v both_o by_o good_a and_o bad_a christian_n i_o think_v you_o have_v not_o the_o true_a touchstone_n to_o discern_v if_o a_o person_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 13._o when_o you_o will_v try_v he_o by_o miracle_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n may_v do_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n in_o the_o person_n where_o he_o dwell_v i_o have_v see_v person_n possess_v with_o that_o unclean_a spirit_n who_o will_v have_v do_v admirable_a thing_n some_o be_v blind_a for_o some_o year_n and_o recover_v their_o sight_n in_o a_o instant_a other_o be_v dumb_a and_o recover_v their_o speech_n by_o supernatural_a mean_n other_o do_v hang_v and_o flee_v visible_o in_o the_o air_n before_o all_o the_o people_n other_o be_v without_o pulse_n and_o motion_n for_o some_o night_n and_o day_n and_o in_o a_o instant_a will_v arise_v and_o walk_v cheerful_o be_v not_o here_o the_o dead_a raise_v the_o sick_a heal_v the_o blind_a recover_v to_o their_o sight_n the_o dumb_a to_o their_o speech_n and_o body_n suspend_v in_o the_o air_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n how_o can_v you_o judge_v then_o by_o miracle_n if_o a_o person_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n you_o
will_v tell_v i_o that_o you_o will_v try_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o true_a miracle_n and_o not_o by_o such_o as_o come_v by_o the_o intervention_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o ask_v by_o what_o mean_v you_o shall_v discern_v between_o these_o so_o long_o as_o you_o have_v not_o that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o will_v learn_v you_o all_o truth_n then_o you_o will_v discern_v all_o thing_n and_o will_v not_o need_v to_o ask_v miracle_n to_o know_v if_o another_o be_v guide_v by_o that_o true_a spirit_n for_o faith_n alone_o will_v give_v you_o evidence_n enough_o when_o the_o pharisee_n ask_v miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o have_v do_v some_o they_o say_v present_o he_o have_v a_o devil_n and_o that_o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o power_n of_o beelzebub_n who_o be_v more_o powerful_a than_o the_o inferior_a devil_n do_v you_o not_o think_v that_o the_o same_o will_v happen_v now_o and_o if_o i_o also_o wrought_v miracle_n will_v they_o not_o undoubted_o say_v that_o i_o be_v a_o sorceress_n which_o be_v even_o to_o be_v fear_v since_o now_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n of_o miracle_n except_o to_o bewitch_v man_n spirit_n with_o admiration_n our_o faith_n be_v sufficient_o confirm_v and_o the_o gospel_n law_n verify_v there_o be_v nothing_o want_v but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o put_v in_o practice_n and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o miracle_n to_o assure_v all_o christian_n that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v without_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o since_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v so_o strong_o affirm_v it_o one_o must_v deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v be_v save_v without_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n see_v he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o way_n and_o that_o he_o who_o enter_v by_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o he_o also_o be_v the_o door_n and_o that_o we_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o by_o he_o what_o miracle_n will_v you_o require_v sir_n from_o one_o who_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o repeat_v the_o same_o word_n which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n pronounce_v and_o say_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n we_o must_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o have_v do_v no_o ill_a to_o any_o body_n nor_o say_v any_o other_o thing_n in_o substance_n but_o that_o man_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o have_v by_o their_o sin_n draw_v down_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o head_n that_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v be_v convert_v to_o god_n and_o take_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o otherwise_o we_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n all_o these_o truth_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o become_v silent_a and_o confound_v by_o they_o silent_a in_o that_o they_o can_v bely_v the_o truth_n and_o confound_v to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o god_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a christian_n but_o be_v unwilling_a to_o yield_v to_o this_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v ashamed_a that_o their_o degeneracy_n be_v lay_v open_a they_o will_v not_o be_v silent_a but_o strive_v to_o reproach_v those_o who_o tell_v this_o truth_n and_o tempt_v they_o with_o foreign_a question_n and_o argument_n even_o demand_v of_o they_o outward_a sign_n and_o miracle_n as_o if_o they_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o virtue_n while_o they_o can_v give_v the_o least_o ray_n of_o virtue_n to_o he_o who_o work_v they_o for_o true_a miracle_n come_v from_o god_n and_o not_o from_o the_o person_n that_o do_v they_o who_o be_v only_o his_o instrument_n to_o show_v to_o man_n that_o which_o god_n operate_v so_o that_o you_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o a_o person_n have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n even_o though_o he_o shall_v work_v outward_a miracle_n since_o judas_n do_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o devil_n we_o need_v another_o touchstone_n to_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 26_o for_o st._n paul_n say_v though_o we_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n all_o this_o will_v be_v nothing_o without_o charity_n it_o be_v a_o great_a blindness_n to_o seek_v for_o miracle_n and_o outward_a sign_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o a_o soul_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v better_a to_o search_v in_o the_o scripture_n what_o gift_n and_o fruit_n the_o holy_a spirit_n bring_v always_o along_o with_o he_o and_o observe_v if_o they_o who_o say_v they_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v in_o they_o those_o gift_n and_o fruit_n for_o than_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o that_o i_o will_v exclude_v true_a miracle_n from_o soul_n that_o love_v god_n 27._o for_o they_o will_v certain_o do_v they_o in_o this_o present_a time_n as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o in_o their_o day_n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o god_n glory_n who_o will_v always_o do_v the_o will_n of_o those_o who_o love_v he_o in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n but_o i_o have_v say_v all_o this_o to_o make_v appear_v to_o you_o that_o this_o be_v the_o least_o favour_n that_o god_n do_v in_o this_o world_n to_o a_o faithful_a soul_n that_o it_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n or_o of_o do_v miracle_n and_o that_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v value_v in_o respect_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n which_o unite_v soul_n to_o god_n these_o be_v true_a miracle_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o neighbour_n they_o restore_v to_o they_o sight_n health_n and_o life_n and_o with_o those_o philosopher_n stone_n of_o live_a faith_n and_o charity_n they_o change_v earthly_a soul_n into_o the_o pure_a gold_n of_o divine_a charity_n these_o be_v the_o true_a miracle_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o this_o fullness_n of_o time_n to_o prove_v the_o force_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n more_o worthy_a beyond_o comparison_n than_o mortal_a body_n the_o sum_n of_o what_o she_o say_v on_o this_o head_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o who_o be_v immediate_o teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o outward_a miracle_n that_o they_o be_v necessary_a only_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o she_o declare_v no_o other_o doctrine_n than_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v sufficient_o confirm_v already_o that_o to_o demand_v miracle_n now_o be_v to_o tempt_v god_n and_o to_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o the_o devil_n who_o we_o be_v tell_v will_n in_o these_o last_o time_n by_o his_o false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n which_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v easy_o be_v distinguish_v from_o true_a one_o that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o sure_a touchstone_n of_o one_o being_n guide_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o the_o gift_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n particular_o live_v faith_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o by_o these_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v great_a miracle_n in_o convert_v and_o heal_v the_o soul_n of_o other_o than_o all_o outward_a miracle_n on_o body_n will_v amount_v to_o and_o that_o in_o these_o last_o time_n god_n will_v manifest_v the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o work_v these_o miracle_n on_o soul_n by_o turn_v they_o away_o from_o thing_n earthly_a and_o temporal_a to_o thing_n heavenly_a and_o eternal_a there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n of_o who_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n and_o their_o prophecy_n be_v general_o for_o aftertime_n and_o not_o fulfil_v in_o their_o own_o day_n yet_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v they_o as_o send_v from_o god_n and_o there_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n for_o it_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o life_n beside_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o miracle_n and_o beyond_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n that_o she_o know_v the_o thought_n of_o other_o man_n heart_n and_o their_o inward_a disposition_n not_o that_o she_o always_o do_v so_o but_o when_o god_n think_v fit_a to_o discover_v they_o to_o she_o either_o for_o she_o own_o safety_n or_o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o this_o be_v ofttimes_o declare_v and_o instance_n give_v of_o it_o not_o only_o by_o herself_o but_o also_o by_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n poiret_n tiellens_n francken_n and_o many_o other_o the_o manner_n also_o of_o have_v so_o clear_a and_o comprehensive_a a_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n without_o study_n conference_n meditation_n or_o book_n be_v no_o less_o strange_a
and_o extraordinary_a xx._n answer_v 2._o it_o be_v object_v against_o her_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o many_o have_v have_v vision_n and_o revelation_n and_o yet_o not_o from_o god_n but_o that_o they_o have_v be_v act_v either_o by_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n or_o by_o illusion_n from_o the_o devil_n who_o can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o work_v upon_o the_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n of_o corrupt_a man_n so_o as_o to_o make_v his_o illusion_n pass_v for_o immediate_a communication_n from_o god_n and_o therefore_o she_o may_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o enthusiast_n and_o visionary_n with_o which_o the_o world_n abound_v enthusiast_n be_v a_o word_n which_o at_o first_o have_v a_o good_a meaning_n viz._n one_o true_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o now_o general_o it_o be_v take_v for_o one_o who_o false_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o be_v not_o and_o of_o such_o there_o be_v several_a sort_n of_o false_a enthusiast_n in_o the_o world_n though_o all_o of_o they_o do_v not_o go_v under_o that_o name_n 1._o many_o there_o be_v who_o indulge_v still_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o be_v strong_o act_v by_o their_o own_o imagination_n or_o by_o impulse_n of_o the_o devil_n pretend_v to_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o vent_v impious_a absurd_a and_o corrupt_a thing_n as_o inspire_v by_o god_n by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o other_o be_v become_v idolater_n of_o their_o reason_n make_v it_o their_o god_n but_o the_o most_o ordinary_a false_a enthusiast_n be_v they_o who_o least_o of_o all_o will_v own_o the_o name_n those_o i_o mean_v who_o pretend_v to_o be_v ambassador_n from_o god_n and_o that_o to_o resist_v they_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o their_o sermon_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v far_o from_o be_v enlighten_v by_o he_o vent_v their_o own_o notion_n passion_n error_n and_o wrangling_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wrest_v it_o to_o speak_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n hate_v and_o persecute_v those_o who_o be_v true_o teach_v of_o god_n and_o call_v they_o by_o the_o odious_a name_n that_o belong_v to_o themselves_o true_o divine_a inspiration_n so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v conceive_v it_o from_o the_o representation_n of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v true_o and_o immediate_o illuminate_v of_o god_n may_v be_v consider_v under_o these_o two_o general_a head_n 1._o either_o god_n communicate_v himself_o his_o light_n and_o truth_n immediate_o to_o the_o soul_n without_o the_o intervention_n of_o any_o sensible_a idea_n or_o image_n or_o 2._o he_o make_v use_v of_o sensible_a image_n to_o affect_v the_o soul_n and_o that_o after_o different_a manner_n by_o dream_n vision_n voice_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v in_o these_o especial_o and_o not_o in_o the_o former_a that_o the_o devil_n labour_v to_o ape_n god_n and_o to_o delude_v soul_n or_o that_o man_n be_v delude_v by_o their_o own_o warm_a imagination_n and_o the_o devil_n illusion_n or_o their_o own_o fancy_n pass_v for_o divine_a vision_n etc._n etc._n now_o that_o the_o motion_n and_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n be_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o such_o a_o enthusiasm_n seem_v evident_o to_o appear_v from_o she_o own_o write_n it_o be_v best_a to_o hear_v herself_o that_o i_o may_v satisfy_v say_v she_o to_o a_o great_a lawyer_n the_o question_n so_o oft_o propose_v by_o you_o 1_o how_o i_o understand_v and_o speak_v with_o god_n i_o shall_v tell_v you_o in_o simplicity_n what_o i_o can_v say_v of_o it_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o soul_n be_v a_o spirit_n they_o communicate_v in_o spirit_n they_o be_v not_o verbal_a discourse_n but_o spiritual_a notice_n intelligence_n spirituelle_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o the_o best_a eloquence_n of_o the_o world_n god_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o soul_n by_o inward_a motion_n which_o the_o soul_n understand_v and_o comprehend_v according_a as_o it_o be_v free_v of_o earthly_a idea_n and_o in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n do_v cease_v the_o motion_n of_o god_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o intelligible_a unto_o it_o the_o notice_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_a when_o the_o soul_n be_v free_a of_o all_o image_n and_o in_o a_o forgetfulness_n of_o all_o create_a thing_n but_o they_o be_v doubtful_a when_o it_o act_v by_o imagination_n and_o seek_v sensibility_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o pure_o god_n the_o saint_n themselves_o have_v in_o this_o point_n commit_v mistake_v by_o vision_n vocal_a word_n ecstasy_n or_o other_o sensibility_n to_o which_o the_o imagination_n contribute_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o soul_n purify_v be_v transform_v into_o he_o and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o word_n nor_o of_o sight_n to_o understand_v he_o more_o than_o we_o need_v a_o eye_n or_o a_o tongue_n to_o understand_v our_o own_o conception_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o declare_v how_o this_o be_v do_v it_o must_v be_v hard_o also_o to_o believe_v it_o and_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v subject_a to_o deception_n and_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o the_o imagination_n if_o these_o inward_a notice_n and_o knowledge_n be_v not_o declare_v by_o a_o person_n who_o life_n and_o word_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v inspire_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o rest_n of_o this_o letter_n be_v transcribe_v above_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o difficult_a for_o man_n understanding_n than_o to_o discern_v spirit_n 8._o to_o know_v if_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n or_o from_o nature_n to_o discern_v this_o a_o divine_a light_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n operate_v that_o of_o the_o devil_n or_o of_o nature_n may_v do_v also_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v a_o soul_n say_v that_o which_o be_v to_o its_o praise_n by_o a_o spirit_n of_o simple_a truth_n that_o of_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v speak_v through_o pure_a pride_n that_o of_o nature_n to_o get_v esteem_n be_v so_o subtle_a in_o its_o flattery_n that_o it_o will_v sometime_o utter_v thing_n to_o its_o contempt_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v humble_a before_o those_o who_o hear_v they_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v holy_a diabolical_a or_o humane_a according_a to_o the_o inward_a intention_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o operate_v which_o god_n alone_o know_v evident_o in_o which_o so_o many_o deceive_v themselves_o who_o presume_v to_o discern_v spirit_n and_o to_o guide_v soul_n by_o their_o own_o natural_a light_n these_o be_v the_o blind_a who_o lead_v the_o blind_a and_o both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n i_o entreat_v you_o to_o remark_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o visible_a to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n where_o he_o reside_v 53._o but_o he_o manifest_v himself_o sufficient_o by_o the_o operation_n which_o he_o produce_v in_o those_o soul_n which_o possess_v he_o they_o be_v adorn_v with_o all_o his_o gift_n and_o fruit_n which_o be_v sure_a mark_n of_o his_o operation_n for_o neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o nature_n can_v work_v such_o effect_n no_o more_o than_o natural_a fruit_n can_v be_v bring_v forth_o without_o the_o tree_n by_o which_o fruit_n we_o discern_v the_o tree_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o discern_v soul_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o to_o regard_v only_o the_o bark_n which_o be_v the_o outward_a action_n and_o word_n there_o be_v occasion_n of_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o the_o devil_n cover_v himself_o with_o the_o garment_n of_o seem_a virtue_n and_o sanctity_n and_o under_o this_o deceive_v the_o most_o pious_a and_o the_o most_o learned_a the_o twelve_o fruit_n and_o the_o seven_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 29._o and_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n have_v always_o their_o operation_n in_o the_o person_n who_o possess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o can_v reside_v any_o where_o without_o they_o more_o than_o the_o sun_n can_v be_v without_o light_n so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o seek_v other_o sign_n whereby_o to_o discern_v this_o spirit_n since_o these_o only_o be_v the_o true_a one●_n so_o that_o we_o may_v know_v if_o a_o person_n be_v animate_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o by_o the_o devil_n or_o by_o nature_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o work_n we_o need_v only_o consider_v they_o with_o a_o single_a eye_n with_o a_o pure_a intention_n without_o curiosity_n or_o affectation_n and_o then_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v for_o god_n
promise_v that_o if_o our_o eye_n be_v single_a our_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o light_n and_o if_o it_o be_v evil_a it_o will_v be_v full_a of_o darkness_n for_o though_o a_o soul_n have_v not_o in_o itself_o the_o holy_a spirit_n yet_o it_o shall_v have_v the_o understanding_n enlighten_v to_o discover_v he_o in_o other_o provide_v it_o behold_v they_o with_o a_o single_a eye_n without_o dissimulation_n or_o surprise_n but_o in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o a_o child_n as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v we_o must_v be_v in_o if_o we_o will_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o who_o see_v i_o write_v 293._o know_v well_o that_o i_o do_v it_o without_o any_o study_n or_o humane_a speculation_n and_o that_o it_o flow_v from_o my_o spirit_n as_o water_n flow_v from_o its_o fountain_n and_o that_o i_o do_v nothing_o but_o lend_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o spirit_n to_o another_o power_n than_o i_o and_o god_n give_v yet_o a_o more_o sure_a testimony_n by_o impart_v to_o i_o his_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n for_o these_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o nature_n which_o be_v corrupt_v can_v produce_v no_o good_a nor_o any_o divine_a virtue_n because_o i_o be_o come_v of_o the_o corrupt_a mass_n of_o adam_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n there_o can_v not_o be_v in_o i_o any_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v all_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a virtue_n which_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n this_o give_v i_o a_o sufficient_a testimony_n that_o i_o be_o lead_v by_o god_n 295._o since_o the_o devil_n and_o nature_n have_v nothing_o of_o those_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v find_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o a_o soul_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n than_o when_o it_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n of_o god_n for_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o see_v miracle_n for_o a_o proof_n we_o may_v be_v deceive_v since_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v miracle_n or_o thing_n which_o seem_v supernatural_a but_o he_o can_v never_o have_v in_o he_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o love_n of_o god_n the_o good_a spirit_n 49._o and_o the_o evil_a may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o quality_n which_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v in_o he_o a_o peace_n and_o sweetness_n that_o comfort_v the_o soul_n and_o draw_v it_o to_o a_o inward_a quiet_a but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n disturb_v the_o understanding_n disquiet_v it_o and_o rob_v it_o of_o tranquillity_n and_o rest_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n act_v sweet_o and_o strong_o in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n all_o that_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v always_o accompany_v with_o the_o quality_n of_o god_n which_o be_v goodness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n and_o that_o which_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n carry_v always_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v malice_n injustice_n and_o lie_v the_o evil_a spirit_n may_v sometime_o move_v to_o do_v a_o good_a thing_n to_o draw_v evil_a out_o of_o it_o but_o that_o seem_a goodness_n can_v never_o be_v accompany_v with_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o inseparable_a quality_n of_o god_n which_o the_o devil_n may_v sometime_o separately_z make_v use_n of_o to_o deceive_v man_n ap_v the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o he_o can_v never_o do_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a just_a and_o true_a altogether_o since_o this_o appertain_v to_o god_n only_o who_o can_v be_v divide_v in_o any_o of_o these_o quality_n god_n do_v not_o speak_v to_o i_o by_o voice_n 300._o thundering_n and_o lightning_n as_o he_o do_v of_o old_a to_o the_o prophet_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o tobit_n by_o angel_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o young_a man_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o jacob_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o ladder_n upon_o which_o angel_n do_v ascend_v and_o descend_v or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o joseph_n in_o a_o dream_n say_v to_o he_o take_v the_o child_n and_o the_o mother_n and_o flee_v into_o egypt_n for_o i_o dare_v not_o rely_v upon_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o fancy_n of_o man_n may_v mingle_v themselves_o and_o make_v such_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o hear_v as_o if_o they_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o i_o fix_v on_o the_o solid_a truth_n of_o god_n on_o his_o righteousness_n and_o on_o his_o love_n because_o in_o such_o thing_n the_o devil_n can_v have_v no_o hold_n i_o have_v sometime_o have_v dream_n and_o vision_n come_v from_o god_n as_o i_o may_v afterward_o make_v appear_v by_o experience_n but_o i_o do_v not_o rely_v on_o these_o dream_n and_o vision_n unless_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v see_v and_o dream_v be_v confirm_v unto_o i_o by_o a_o secret_a notice_n intelligence_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o i_o converse_v ordinary_o with_o god_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v free_a of_o all_o image_n and_o deliver_v from_o the_o agitation_n of_o its_o passion_n and_o the_o imagination_n cease_v to_o operate_v then_o i_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o his_o reason_v not_o with_o my_o ear_n but_o with_o my_o understanding_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o make_v i_o see_v and_o hear_v all_o that_o i_o need_v to_o know_v both_o for_o my_o own_o conduct_n and_o that_o of_o other_o which_o many_o have_v experience_v and_o find_v that_o i_o have_v tell_v they_o the_o most_o secret_a thing_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o neither_o man_n nor_o devil_n can_v know_v never_o amuse_v yourself_o with_o discourse_n 57_o vision_n or_o revelation_n make_v to_o you_o or_o other_o if_o you_o do_v not_o perceive_v assure_o that_o they_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n or_o otherwise_o you_o will_v be_v easy_o deceive_v remark_n always_o if_o what_o you_o say_v or_o do_v be_v accompany_v with_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o then_o you_o shall_v assure_o hear_v god_n speak_v to_o your_o soul_n for_o if_o you_o walk_v in_o these_o quality_n you_o will_v be_v in_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n can_v deceive_v you_o no_o long_o by_o illusion_n or_o false_a imagination_n as_o he_o will_v easy_o do_v so_o long_o as_o you_o do_v not_o possess_v those_o essential_a virtue_n of_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o which_o you_o ought_v always_o to_o walk_v if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v seduce_v by_o satan_n the_o devil_n can_v give_v vision_n 70._o ravishment_n or_o supernatural_a ecstasy_n to_o sorcerer_n yea_o make_v they_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v be_v a_o subtle_a spirit_n and_o foresee_v afar_o and_o by_o conjecture_n what_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o he_o may_v make_v they_o fall_v out_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o sorcerer_n who_o be_v powerful_a and_o numerous_a may_v by_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n bring_v about_o what_o have_v be_v before_o tell_v therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o receive_v nothing_o for_o truth_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o a_o more_o strict_a union_n with_o god_n and_o denial_n of_o ourselves_o these_o thing_n be_v always_o good_a even_o though_o they_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o devil_n himself_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v in_o believe_v they_o i_o can_v never_o have_v the_o least_o doubt_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a spirit_n that_o communicate_v himself_o to_o my_o understanding_n 184._o for_o the_o evil_a spirit_n can_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n produce_v so_o good_a and_o so_o constant_a operation_n such_o as_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o hatred_n of_o one_o self_n moreover_o he_o can_v not_o separate_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n nor_o remove_v from_o it_o the_o covet_v the_o riches_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o give_v it_o a_o full_a contentment_n in_o the_o want_n of_o all_o humane_a consolation_n nor_o yet_o joy_v in_o hardship_n and_o contempt_n all_o these_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o the_o devil_n for_o he_o be_v too_o opposite_a to_o all_o these_o virtue_n and_o lead_v ordinary_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o evil_a though_o at_o first_o he_o cover_v they_o with_o virtue_n the_o end_n of_o his_o operation_n make_v appear_v sufficient_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o author_n and_o make_v know_v the_o workman_n by_o his_o work_n thus_o you_o see_v how_o certain_a mark_v she_o give_v whereby_o to_o distinguish_v true_a from_o false_a enthusiasm_n the_o conduct_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o one_o own_o imagination_n and_o how_o man_n may_v preserve_v themselves_o from_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o the_o last_o that_o where_o a_o soul_n be_v
true_o purify_v and_o the_o communication_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v to_o the_o inferior_a understanding_n without_o the_o use_n of_o the_o imagination_n or_o sense_n or_o the_o imprint_n on_o they_o image_n vision_n or_o voice_n there_o neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o man_n imagination_n can_v have_v any_o hold_n that_o the_o devil_n can_v work_v on_o the_o imagination_n of_o such_o as_o he_o do_v on_o wicked_a and_o brain_n sick_a person_n that_o when_o vision_n voice_n and_o sensible_a rapture_n be_v communicate_v to_o such_o that_o they_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v from_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o apply_v to_o he_o in_o that_o inward_a way_n in_o which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o communicate_v himself_o the_o soul_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o agitation_n of_o its_o passion_n and_o the_o imagination_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bring_v along_o with_o he_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o soul_n and_o his_o divine_a quality_n of_o goodness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n and_o his_o operation_n be_v both_o good_a and_o abide_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n disturb_v the_o understanding_n rob_v it_o of_o tranquillity_n and_o rest_n and_o that_o which_o proceed_v from_o that_o spirit_n carry_v always_o with_o it_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o devil_n injustice_n malice_n hypocrisy_n these_o be_v the_o distinguish_a evidence_n for_o one_o self_n and_o for_o other_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o any_o pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n when_o it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o their_o own_o fancy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o hazard_n of_o be_v mistake_v if_o we_o follow_v that_o only_o which_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n though_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o wicked_a person_n or_o the_o devil_n himself_o that_o there_o can_v be_v a_o sure_a testimony_n that_o one_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n than_o if_o he_o produce_v in_o they_o his_o fruit_n and_o gift_n and_o impart_v to_o they_o the_o divine_a quality_n of_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o charity_n and_o by_o their_o mean_n produce_v the_o same_o good_a effect_n in_o other_o that_o the_o evil_a spirit_n may_v sometime_o move_v to_o do_v a_o good_a thing_n to_o draw_v evil_a out_o of_o it_o but_o can_v never_o do_v that_o that_o be_v just_a and_o good_a and_o true_a altogether_o which_o come_v from_o god_n only_o and_o though_o the_o devil_n cover_v his_o wickedness_n at_o first_o with_o seem_a virtue_n yet_o the_o end_n of_o all_o his_o operation_n show_v from_o who_o they_o come_v thus_o a._n b._n lay_v no_o stress_n on_o vision_n ecstasy_n rapture_n or_o other_o sensibility_n to_o which_o the_o imagination_n contribute_v and_o where_o the_o devil_n and_o fancy_n may_v impose_v but_o upon_o the_o immediate_a notice_n of_o god_n to_o the_o understanding_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o and_o her_o sincerity_n in_o it_o appeal_v to_o the_o fruit_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o the_o divine_a quality_n which_o he_o have_v implant_v in_o her_o soul_n and_o by_o which_o she_o constant_o steer_v all_o her_o action_n and_o that_o no_o body_n may_v be_v deceive_v by_o she_o declare_v thing_n as_o truth_n from_o god_n which_o be_v not_o she_o desire_v they_o may_v receive_v they_o only_o in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o then_o there_o be_v no_o hazard_n of_o be_v deceive_v those_o truth_n be_v so_o well_o confirm_v already_o and_o so_o necessary_a for_o all_o who_o will_v be_v save_v and_o in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o lead_v we_o to_o a_o more_o strict_a union_n with_o god_n and_o denial_n of_o one_o self_n and_o these_o be_v always_o good_a though_o the_o devil_n shall_v declare_v they_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v in_o believe_v they_o xxi_o answer_v 3._o it_o be_v say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n of_o a_o fine_a natural_a spirit_n of_o a_o clear_a and_o pierce_a judgement_n and_o a_o lively_a imagination_n and_o be_v retire_v and_o thoughtful_a it_o be_v no_o wonder_n though_o she_o have_v clear_a and_o extraordinary_a thought_n and_o sentiment_n beyond_o other_o all_o this_o may_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o her_o natural_a spirit_n and_o not_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n this_o thought_n always_o ready_o occur_v to_o those_o who_o upon_o the_o read_n of_o her_o write_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o excellency_n of_o her_o sentiment_n and_o it_o be_v object_v to_o herself_o i_o shall_v here_o set_v down_o her_o own_o answer_n you_o ought_v to_o have_v more_o charity_n for_o i_o etc._n than_o to_o call_v i_o wise_a and_o of_o a_o good_a natural_a judgement_n when_o you_o judge_v that_o i_o be_o proud_a for_o your_o say_n serve_v only_o to_o make_v i_o more_o so_o i_o have_v always_o say_v that_o i_o be_o nothing_o but_o a_o simple_a child_n and_o now_o i_o hear_v divine_n and_o the_o learned_a say_v that_o i_o have_v a_o great_a natural_a spirit_n which_o make_v i_o say_v and_o write_v thing_n which_o so_o many_o person_n do_v admire_v i_o have_v always_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o produce_v they_o immediate_o in_o i_o and_o now_o you_o will_v have_v i_o so_o presumptuous_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o this_o come_v from_o myself_o or_o from_o my_o natural_a judgement_n i_o shall_v be_v a_o wise_a girl_n indeed_o if_o i_o have_v find_v out_o so_o many_o excellent_a truth_n without_o school_n or_o study_n without_o book_n and_o without_o master_n i_o believe_v it_o be_v ignorance_n that_o make_v you_o speak_v so_o and_o that_o you_o know_v not_o what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v nor_o what_o a_o natural_a spirit_n be_v and_o can_v distinguish_v that_o which_o come_v from_o nature_n from_o that_o which_o come_v from_o grace_n as_o not_o be_v sufficient_o advance_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o be_o afraid_a my_o judgement_n may_v offend_v you_o but_o i_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o you_o that_o it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o that_o you_o have_v not_o yet_o penetrate_v nor_o discover_v how_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n act_n and_o how_o the_o spirit_n of_o nature_n act_n and_o not_o have_v this_o touchstone_n which_o discover_v fine_a gold_n from_o the_o counterfeit_n you_o easy_o take_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o you_o will_v needs_o hold_v the_o rank_n of_o master_n whereas_o it_o be_v your_o happiness_n to_o be_v good_a scholar_n to_o show_v that_o i_o have_v more_o charity_n for_o your_o soul_n than_o you_o have_v ill-will_a for_o i_o i_o will_v declare_v what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v and_o what_o the_o natural_a spirit_n be_v that_o you_o may_v no_o long_o be_v mistake_v i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o operation_n proceed_v from_o both_o these_o spirit_n and_o how_o they_o must_v be_v animate_v the_o thing_n be_v clear_a and_o certain_a easy_a to_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o who_o will_v use_v their_o reason_n and_o they_o who_o do_v not_o use_v it_o be_v beast_n for_o nothing_o distinguish_v a_o man_n from_o a_o beast_n but_o faith_n and_o reason_n i_o set_v down_o therefore_o for_o the_o chief_a mark_n and_o ground_n of_o discern_a spirit_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v this_o quality_n that_o he_o never_o act_n and_o operate_v but_o for_o thing_n divine_a and_o eternal_a or_o tend_v to_o eternity_n and_o that_o the_o natural_a spirit_n never_o act_v nor_o aim_v but_o for_o thing_n earthly_a and_o temporal_a for_o all_o that_o be_v from_o nature_n tend_v to_o its_o centre_n which_o be_v the_o earth_n and_o time_n where_o nature_n be_v bound_v to_o delight_v itself_o without_o know_v or_o tend_v to_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v conformable_a to_o nature_n when_o you_o will_v know_v then_o if_o it_o be_v nature_n that_o direct_v the_o action_n of_o a_o person_n remark_n only_o if_o by_o what_o they_o say_v or_o do_v they_o aim_v only_o at_o thing_n earthly_a and_o transitory_a in_o this_o case_n you_o may_v well_o judge_v that_o they_o have_v but_o a_o natural_a spirit_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n since_o this_o never_a act_n but_o for_o divine_a thing_n tend_v to_o eternity_n so_o that_o when_o you_o see_v person_n labour_v to_o gain_v money_n or_o to_o have_v pleasure_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o world_n it_o may_v be_v absolute_o say_v they_o have_v but_o natural_a spirit_n and_o can_v thereby_o find_v god_n nor_o life_n eternal_a for_o though_o they_o flatter_v themselves_o and_o say_v that_o they_o trade_n only_o to_o make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o their_o wealth_n and_o study_v that_o they_o may_v make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o their_o learning_n all_o this_o be_v but_o for_o time_n and_o earthly_a thing_n proceed_v only_o
from_o the_o natural_a spirit_n that_o cloak_n itself_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o this_o divine_a spirit_n never_o tend_v but_o to_o divine_a thing_n if_o you_o have_v observe_v sir_n that_o that_o fine_a spirit_n which_o you_o attribute_v to_o i_o have_v be_v apply_v to_o get_v wealth_n or_o to_o gain_v praise_n or_o to_o conversation_n to_o take_v pleasure_n with_o man_n you_o will_v have_v have_v some_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o i_o have_v nothing_o but_o a_o natural_a spirit_n or_o if_o you_o have_v discover_v in_o my_o word_n any_o ornament_n of_o language_n to_o make_v i_o be_v esteem_v eloquent_a or_o in_o my_o write_v any_o affectation_n of_o speak_v well_o that_o i_o may_v be_v praise_v these_o will_v be_v all_o mark_n of_o a_o human_a spirit_n i_o will_v glad_o ask_v you_o sir_n if_o you_o have_v ever_o see_v i_o act_v by_o this_o natural_a spirit_n first_o if_o i_o have_v ever_o do_v any_o thing_n to_o gain_v money_n or_o if_o i_o have_v desire_v any_o sensual_a pleasure_n or_o feed_v myself_o with_o praise_n or_o love_v the_o conversation_n of_o man_n have_v you_o not_o rather_o perceive_v that_o i_o ask_v nothing_o of_o any_o body_n for_o i_o can_v say_v in_o truth_n that_o if_o they_o will_v give_v i_o riches_n i_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o they_o for_o my_o own_o good_n be_v a_o burden_n to_o i_o and_o the_o two_o thing_n i_o hate_v in_o the_o world_n be_v honour_n and_o sin_n the_o conversation_n and_o divertisement_n of_o the_o world_n be_v a_o weariness_n to_o i_o and_o if_o i_o affect_v to_o be_v praise_v for_o my_o word_n or_o write_n i_o will_v study_v to_o speak_v well_o to_o write_v well_o and_o to_o spell_v well_o whereas_o i_o have_v nothing_o but_o a_o simple_a vulgar_a language_n naked_o to_o signify_v my_o thought_n without_o curiosity_n or_o any_o circumspection_n and_o for_o my_o write_n do_v you_o not_o see_v they_o be_v without_o any_o study_n or_o ornament_n full_a of_o fault_n of_o write_v and_o orthography_n without_o any_o human_a regard_n or_o reflection_n do_v you_o think_v i_o have_v not_o enough_o of_o spirit_n to_o correct_v all_o these_o fault_n and_o to_o learn_v in_o a_o little_a time_n to_o write_v and_o spell_v perfect_o that_o man_n may_v see_v my_o skill_n i_o be_o far_o from_o these_o sentiment_n for_o i_o will_v never_o learn_v any_o thing_n of_o man_n because_o i_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v praise_v by_o they_o one_o will_v have_v free_o teach_v i_o orthography_n another_o poesy_n another_o the_o mathematics_n another_o the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o i_o despise_v all_o this_o to_o content_v myself_o with_o write_v on_o my_o knee_n on_o a_o little_a piece_n of_o board_n the_o thing_n that_o god_n shed_v into_o my_o spirit_n without_o desire_v to_o make_v any_o reflection_n to_o see_v if_o i_o write_v well_o or_o ill_o or_o if_o what_o i_o say_v will_v please_v one_o or_o displease_v another_o whether_o they_o will_v be_v well_o receive_v and_o approve_v or_o despise_v or_o censure_v i_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n in_o speak_v or_o write_v but_o eternal_a thing_n without_o care_v for_o temporal_a and_o earthly_a thing_n have_v no_o pretension_n upon_o earth_n but_o only_o that_o of_o please_a god_n and_o stir_v up_o my_o neighbour_n to_o his_o love_n this_o can_v proceed_v from_o a_o natural_a spirit_n which_o be_v confine_v to_o earthly_a thing_n and_o can_v aim_v to_o please_v god_n nor_o at_o eternal_a thing_n for_o nature_n can_v find_v its_o pleasure_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o god_n which_o it_o do_v not_o see_v and_o feel_v what_o be_v beyond_o sense_n be_v not_o food_n agreeable_a to_o nature_n more_o than_o precious_a stone_n can_v be_v food_n for_o horse_n for_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v aliment_n proportion_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o either_o for_o the_o natural_a sense_n will_v no_o more_o be_v fill_v with_o god_n and_o thing_n eternal_a than_o a_o horse_n will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o jewel_n for_o his_o food_n but_o he_o love_v the_o grass_n and_o hay_n far_o better_o as_o food_n more_o suitable_a to_o his_o nature_n even_o so_o it_o be_v of_o the_o natural_a spirit_n and_o sense_n they_o do_v far_o more_o esteem_a thing_n earthly_a and_o sensual_a than_o god_n who_o be_v a_o invisible_a spirit_n or_o thing_n eternal_a which_o they_o do_v not_o perceive_v and_o feel_v with_o their_o sense_n whence_o we_o may_v draw_v a_o sure_a consequence_n that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o seek_v or_o desire_v the_o good_n and_o pleasure_n which_o tickle_v our_o sense_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o live_v supernatural_o and_o he_o who_o seek_v nothing_o but_o god_n and_o thing_n eternal_a can_v have_v this_o from_o a_o natural_a spirit_n and_o when_o you_o will_v needs_o say_v that_o my_o write_n proceed_v from_o a_o natural_a spirit_n you_o must_v prove_v that_o they_o aim_v at_o some_o profit_n pleasure_n or_o praise_n from_o men._n if_o i_o desire_v to_o profit_n by_o they_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o please_v they_o and_o to_o gain_v their_o friendship_n and_o if_o i_o desire_v to_o take_v pleasure_n among_o they_o i_o will_v draw_v they_o to_o i_o as_o you_o do_v and_o if_o i_o desire_v their_o praise_n i_o will_v speak_v that_o which_o they_o will_v willing_o hear_v and_o will_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n for_o if_o i_o will_v say_v that_o all_o who_o have_v visit_v i_o be_v virtuous_a soul_n and_o true_a christian_n undoubted_o every_o one_o will_v esteem_v i_o and_o great_o praise_v i_o but_o when_o i_o do_v the_o quite_o contrary_a i_o show_v it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o act_v in_o my_o write_n since_o they_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o to_o make_v know_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o alone_o can_v guide_v soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o the_o same_o write_n speak_v nothing_o but_o of_o despise_v earthly_a and_o temporal_a thing_n there_o can_v be_v a_o more_o evident_a mark_n of_o distinction_n between_o the_o act_n of_o the_o spiri_n of_o god_n and_o that_o of_o nature_n than_o what_o be_v assign_v by_o she_o the_o last_o tend_v only_o to_o thing_n temporal_a and_o the_o other_o to_o thing_n eternal_a and_o that_o the_o spirit_n she_o be_v guide_v by_o have_v this_o constant_a tendency_n to_o god_n and_o eternity_n and_o not_o to_o honour_n praise_n wealth_n or_o pleasure_n or_o any_o temporal_a and_o earthly_a thing_n appear_v by_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o her_o life_n and_o conversation_n xxii_o answer_v 4._o it_o be_v allege_v as_o another_o presumption_n that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o by_o her_o own_o wild_a imagination_n that_o they_o say_v she_o be_v ready_a to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n even_o all_o she_o mistake_v in_o writing_n or_o cite_v of_o passage_n of_o scripture_n name_v peter_n for_o paul_n or_o the_o like_a and_o for_o a_o evidence_n of_o this_o they_o cite_v the_o story_n concern_v m._n noel_n a_o divine_a in_o flanders_n who_o when_o he_o first_o read_v some_o of_o her_o write_n they_o be_v full_a of_o fault_n of_o orthography_n and_o language_n 271._o and_o not_o so_o methodical_o order_v and_o the_o same_o thing_n often_o repeat_v in_o different_a place_n though_o after_o a_o different_a manner_n he_o offer_v to_o put_v they_o in_o a_o better_a order_n and_o style_n without_o change_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o when_o she_o ask_v counsel_n of_o god_n it_o be_v say_v to_o she_o what_o rashness_n be_v it_o for_o man_n to_o offer_v to_o correct_v the_o work_n of_o god_n all_o this_o may_v be_v very_o true_a and_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o she_o ascribe_v all_o her_o mistake_v to_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n yea_o she_o plain_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o all_o the_o mistake_v and_o error_n she_o fall_v into_o be_v from_o herself_o and_o not_o from_o god_n when_o you_o ask_v etc._n say_v she_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n humane_a in_o my_o motion_n word_n and_o deed_n this_o question_n seem_v to_o i_o ridiculous_a since_o be_v a_o humane_a creature_n as_o well_o as_o other_o i_o must_v have_v natural_a motion_n and_o faculty_n as_o other_o have_v otherwise_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o angel_n or_o a_o statue_n of_o wood_n stone_n or_o metal_n which_o instrument_n god_n never_o make_v use_v of_o for_o declare_v his_o truth_n to_o men._n but_o the_o devil_n have_v oft_o speak_v by_o such_o oracle_n but_o god_n speak_v by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n natural_a person_n as_o other_o be_v who_o through_o their_o natural_a frailty_n do_v often_o commit_v very_o great_a fault_n yea_o sometime_o gross_a sin_n must_v we_o doubt_v if_o moses_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o
get_v he_o there_o this_o expedient_a be_v think_v upon_o mounseur_fw-fr gorin_n who_o be_v true_o monsieur_n the_o saint_n amour_n who_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o affair_n between_o the_o jansenist_n and_o jesuit_n and_o on_o that_o occasion_n write_v the_o famous_a journal_n of_o st._n amour_n have_v buy_v from_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr cort_n some_o land_n in_o noordstrand_n who_o have_v assure_v he_o that_o he_o will_v have_v eight_o per_fw-la cent._n of_o yearly_a revenue_n and_o if_o it_o do_v not_o yield_v that_o promise_v to_o restore_v he_o his_o principal_n and_o to_o take_v back_o the_o say_a land_n and_o by_o a_o trick_n he_o get_v he_o to_o sign_v a_o paper_n for_o this_o in_o which_o paper_n the_o principal_a sum_n be_v set_v at_o 12000_o florin_n french_a money_n and_o when_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n say_v the_o price_n of_o the_o land_n be_v only_o 8000_o florin_n gorin_n say_v it_o be_v true_a but_o 8000_o of_o dutch_a money_n make_v 12000_o of_o french_a and_o so_o the_o good_a man_n reply_v he_o do_v not_o know_v the_o value_n of_o the_o exchange_n hasty_o sign_v the_o write_v when_o he_o be_v take_v horse_n at_o paris_n whither_o he_o have_v go_v to_o see_v his_o good_a friend_n the_o jansenist_n who_o be_v then_o persecute_v and_o to_o who_o he_o will_v have_v give_v all_o his_o land_n if_o they_o have_v ask_v they_o so_o gorin_n be_v procurator_n for_o the_o other_o french_a jansenist_n who_o have_v buy_v interest_n in_o noordstrand_n resolve_v to_o demand_v his_o principal_a and_o more_o as_o have_v get_v only_o 4_o or_o 5_o per_fw-la cent._n of_o yearly_a revenue_n and_o he_o know_v m._n the_o cort_n have_v not_o money_n to_o re-imburse_a he_o the_o other_o partner_n consent_v and_o especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o oratory_n at_o mechlin_n who_o have_v not_o yet_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o possession_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n good_n and_o think_v this_o will_v be_v a_o mean_a to_o perpetuate_v it_o the_o matter_n stand_v thus_o m._n the_o cort_n have_v purchase_v a_o considerable_a interest_n in_o noordstrand_n beside_o the_o tithe_n and_o the_o be_v the_o director_n of_o it_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n will_v make_v that_o island_n a_o place_n of_o refuge_n for_o his_o persecute_a servant_n and_o look_v then_o on_o the_o jansenist_n as_o such_o he_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o france_n flanders_n and_o holland_n into_o this_o isle_n of_o which_o he_o sell_v they_o parcel_n and_o he_o himself_o have_v contract_v debt_n in_o make_v of_o this_o purchase_n the_o father_n of_o the_o oratory_n at_o mechlin_n urge_v he_o to_o leave_v all_o his_o own_o possession_n and_o right_n there_o to_o their_o congregation_n he_o consent_v provide_v they_o will_v pay_v his_o debt_n which_o he_o have_v contract_v in_o the_o acquisition_n this_o they_o promise_v to_o do_v but_o to_o authorise_v their_o right_n they_o will_v have_v it_o by_o way_n of_o contract_n as_o if_o they_o have_v have_v give_v he_o such_o sum_n for_o his_o possession_n though_o he_o never_o receive_v any_o and_o make_v he_o leave_v out_o the_o condition_n of_o pay_v his_o debt_n for_o that_o they_o will_v have_v he_o trust_v their_o world_n allege_v that_o otherwise_o his_o creditor_n may_v fall_v upon_o they_o all_o at_o once_o to_o their_o ruin_n thus_o they_o enter_v in_o possession_n and_o when_o they_o will_v pay_v none_o of_o his_o creditor_n he_o make_v a_o revocation_n of_o this_o contract_n of_o sale_n as_o fraudulent_a to_o which_o the_o grand_a council_n at_o mechlin_n consent_v provide_v he_o satisfy_v the_o father_n within_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o same_o be_v ratify_v by_o the_o duke_n of_o holstein_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o island_n thus_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o free_v his_o possession_n of_o all_o their_o pretension_n against_o they_o and_o to_o retire_v thither_o with'those_n who_o love_v the_o truth_n but_o their_o avarice_n and_o hatred_n of_o he_o as_o a_o deserter_n make_v they_o conspire_v his_o ruin_n the_o seven_o of_o march_n 1669._o m._n gorin_n or_o st._n amour_n come_v with_o two_o other_o to_o make_v a_o friendly_a visit_n to_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n in_o his_o lodging_n within_o two_o day_n he_o come_v again_o and_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n be_v absent_a he_o speak_v with_o a._n b._n who_o offer_v to_o give_v he_o his_o principal_a sum_n for_o the_o land_n he_o have_v of_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n at_o which_o he_o seem_v well_o satisfy_v the_o same_o day_n he_o obtain_v a_o order_n for_o seize_v his_o person_n upon_o the_o pretence_n already_o say_v within_o two_o day_n he_o invite_v he_o friendly_a to_o come_v to_o the_o house_n of_o john_n de_fw-fr swaan_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o partner_n about_o the_o new_a dike_n he_o design_v to_o make_v in_o noordstrand_n and_o have_v the_o sergeant_n ready_a he_o be_v immediate_o seize_v and_o make_v prisoner_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o m._n gorin_n liv._o deliverance_n though_o the_o father_n of_o the_o oratory_n possess_v all_o his_o revenue_n they_o send_v he_o not_o one_o penny_n in_o his_o misery_n a._n b._n offer_v sufficient_a bail_n solicit_v to_o have_v he_o prisoner_n in_o the_o town-house_n obtain_v order_n from_o the_o duke_n of_o holstein_n to_o his_o opposite_a party_n to_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n that_o both_o may_v answer_v at_o his_o court_n their_o proper_a judge_n spare_v neither_o procurator_n nor_o advocate_n write_v for_o his_o justification_n to_o all_o concern_v plead_v with_o a_o force_n of_o reason_n and_o equity_n worthy_a of_o the_o great_a civilian_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a they_o seek_v to_o seize_v she_o as_o the_o only_a person_n that_o supply_v he_o with_o food_n and_o other_o thing_n and_o she_o be_v force_v to_o leave_v her_o lodging_n and_o conceal_v herself_o she_o write_v he_o many_o letter_n for_o his_o conduct_n and_o consolation_n and_o be_v spend_v with_o labour_n and_o affliction_n and_o pray_v earnest_o to_o god_n to_o assist_v he_o who_o no_o creature_n will_v help_v it_o be_v tell_v she_o that_o he_o will_v be_v his_o advocate_n and_o deliver_v he_o upon_o which_o she_o leave_v off_o to_o solicit_v any_o when_o bail_n be_v offer_v they_o get_v still_o some_o new_a pretension_n to_o arrest_v he_o god_n make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o mean_n for_o his_o liberation_n one_o of_o his_o creditor_n mugenhove_n take_v a_o remorse_n for_o this_o arrest_n and_o call_v together_o his_o brethren_n and_o ●isters_n coheir_n bring_v they_o to_o sign_v a_o paper_n for_o his_o deliverance_n which_o be_v present_v to_o the_o grand_a officer_n at_o amsterdam_n m._n hasclaer_n who_o find_v it_o singe_v with_o so_o many_o hand_n think_v it_o be_v a_o general_a warrant_n and_o give_v order_n to_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n which_o be_v do_v after_o a_o miserable_a state_n of_o six_o month_n by_o which_o god_n purge_v his_o soul_n and_o give_v he_o so_o absolute_a a_o patience_n tranquillity_n and_o resignation_n to_o his_o will_n that_o he_o seem_v quite_o another_o man._n he_o immediate_o pass_v over_o to_o holstein_n his_o enemy_n be_v enrage_v at_o his_o unexpected_a deliverance_n lv._o holstein_n but_o their_o malice_n cease_v not_o there_o about_o six_o week_n after_o he_o come_v to_o holstein_n there_o come_v to_o he_o a_o stranger_n pretend_v to_o be_v send_v from_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n at_o hamburg_n to_o see_v noordstrand_n and_o to_o be_v a_o lover_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o after_o have_v entertain_v he_o kind_o for_o some_o day_n speak_v of_o some_o bodily_a indisposition_n he_o have_v contract_v in_o the_o prison_n and_o of_o the_o gravel_n the_o stranger_n say_v he_o have_v a_o most_o singular_a powder_n for_o it_o he_o be_v prevail_v with_o to_o take_v it_o and_o at_o the_o second_o time_n be_v strike_v next_o morning_n with_o a_o universal_a palsy_n make_v sign_n that_o he_o be_v poison_v by_o the_o stranger_n who_o have_v get_v away_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o past_o over_o in_o the_o first_o boat_n he_o die_v some_o day_n after_o november_n 1669._o lvi_o sickness_n about_o this_o time_n a._n b._n be_v seize_v with_o a_o long_a and_o grievous_a sickness_n which_o bring_v she_o often_o to_o the_o gate_n of_o death_n she_o can_v not_o move_v herself_o nor_o often_o express_v she_o needs_o her_o friend_n who_o be_v but_o one_o or_o two_o dare_v not_o go_v see_v she_o in_o the_o daytime_n lest_o she_o shall_v be_v discover_v there_o be_v none_o to_o assist_v she_o but_o a_o slothful_a maid_n who_o let_v she_o suffer_v a_o thousand_o necessity_n about_o this_o time_n the_o murderer_n come_v to_o ask_v for_o she_o and_o bad_a tell_v she_o he_o be_v come_v from_o her_o friend_n from_o noordstrand_n with_o letter_n from_o he_o and_o something_o to_o tell_v she_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n
out_o another_o at_o last_o a_o friend_n hire_v for_o she_o in_o his_o own_o name_n a_o little_a chamber_n be_v but_o the_o half_a of_o a_o room_n divide_v in_o two_o by_o so_o thin_a a_o wall_n that_o all_o that_o be_v do_v or_o speak_v be_v hear_v in_o the_o other_o where_o live_v person_n pre-occupied_n with_o the_o common_a fame_n and_o animosity_n there_o she_o remain_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n alone_o lying_z during_o the_o night_n of_o a_o cold_a winter_n on_o the_o floor_n without_o put_v off_o her_o clothes_n without_o bed_n straw_n or_o cover_v nevertheless_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n fill_v her_o heart_n with_o joy_n to_o see_v that_o her_o state_n and_o treatment_n be_v a_o copy_n take_v from_o the_o original_a of_o the_o life_n of_o her_o suffer_v and_o persecute_a saviour_n who_o because_o he_o declare_v the_o truth_n be_v so_o persecute_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o pharisee_n as_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o flee_v here_o and_o there_o so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o enjoy_v the_o advantage_n which_o the_o most_o miserable_a beast_n have_v who_o have_v safe_a retreat_n holes_n and_o nest_n while_o he_o have_v not_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n here_o she_o write_v the_o treatise_n call_v the_o touchstone_n she_o be_v then_o in_o a_o extreme_a want_n of_o all_o thing_n her_o friend_n be_v all_o disperssed_a in_o holland_n husum_n noordstrand_n and_o elsewhere_o her_o mother-in-law_n cause_v confiscate_v her_o good_n and_o revenue_n at_o lisle_n to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n his_o profit_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o there_o be_v war_n between_o france_n and_o holland_n she_o be_v in_o a_o enemy_n country_n which_o be_v false_a she_o have_v leave_v holland_n before_o the_o war_n be_v proclaim_v she_o give_v they_o to_o the_o hospital_n of_o lisle_n which_o she_o have_v govern_v to_o free_v they_o from_o this_o unjust_a confiscation_n lxx_o pastor_n lie_v prevail_v but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o however_o man_n have_v be_v pre-occupied_n yet_o at_o last_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v right_o inform_v and_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o here_o those_o of_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n be_v desirous_a to_o know_v at_o the_o bottom_n what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o maid_n be_v against_o who_o the_o pastor_n be_v so_o enrage_v the_o pillage_n of_o the_o book_n and_o the_o scatter_a sheet_n of_o they_o here_o and_o there_o contribute_v much_o to_o this_o both_o great_a and_o small_a find_v thereby_o that_o she_o have_v be_v great_o wrong_v the_o inn_n and_o private_a house_n be_v full_a of_o these_o leave_n wrap_v up_o their_o tobacco_n and_o other_o small_a ware_n so_o that_o many_o who_o have_v occasion_n to_o read_v they_o be_v so_o convince_v of_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o pronounce_v her_o innocent_a and_o the_o pastor_n guilty_a of_o wrong_v she_o by_o their_o calumny_n at_o the_o court_n they_o begin_v to_o speak_v well_o of_o they_o and_o to_o read_v they_o the_o general_n declare_v open_o for_o they_o the_o grand_a precedent_n m._n kielman_n and_o other_o begin_v to_o esteem_v they_o some_o in_o a_o conversation_n at_o court_n have_v say_v that_o if_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v falsehood_n she_o ought_v to_o have_v answer_v they_o another_o answer_v that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v infer_v from_o her_o silence_n she_o be_v forbid_v to_o write_v against_o they_o and_o that_o if_o his_o highness_n shall_v permit_v she_o to_o answer_v she_o will_v do_v it_o very_o quick_o the_o duke_n say_v if_o it_o depend_v upon_o his_o permission_n he_o give_v it_o willing_o the_o precedent_n cause_v she_o to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o this_o and_o immediate_o she_o cause_v to_o be_v deliver_v to_o he_o a_o fair_a copy_n of_o her_o answer_n the_o touchstone_n he_o read_v it_o with_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o give_v it_o to_o many_o of_o the_o court_n they_o be_v thereupon_o persuade_v of_o her_o innocence_n the_o precedent_n offer_v to_o cause_v her_o press_n and_o book_n to_o be_v restore_v she_o say_v all_o this_o will_v serve_v she_o for_o nothing_o so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v she_o out_o of_o her_o inheritance_n at_o noordstrand_n which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o oratory_n unjust_o occupy_v also_o she_o offer_v to_o satisfy_v all_o the_o creditor_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v find_v just_a the_o precedent_n promise_v to_o assist_v she_o in_o it_o lxxi_o protection_n thus_o she_o breathe_v a_o little_a more_o free_o the_o prince_n take_v she_o again_o into_o his_o protection_n her_o friend_n who_o be_v scatter_v return_v to_o she_o again_o she_o stay_v in_o a_o convenient_a lodging_n with_o four_o of_o they_o peaceable_o from_o the_o year_n 1675._o to_o the_o next_o the_o churchman_n of_o holstein_n be_v not_o a_o little_a enrage_v to_o hear_v of_o give_v her_o possession_n of_o noordstrand_n they_o renew_v their_o clamour_n at_o court_n and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o get_v it_o stop_v they_o suggest_v to_o clog_v it_o with_o a_o thousand_o restriction_n sometime_o that_o she_o shall_v possess_v it_o upon_o condition_n of_o print_v nothing_o sometime_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o publish_v her_o doctrine_n her_o people_n shall_v not_o speak_v of_o it_o to_o any_o body_n she_o shall_v be_v answerable_a for_o all_o the_o word_n and_o action_n of_o her_o friend_n and_o such_o like_a under_o pain_n of_o lose_v all_o her_o good_n when_o she_o show_v the_o invalidity_n of_o these_o project_n they_o propose_v other_o the_o nullity_n of_o which_o she_o as_o evident_o make_v appear_v so_o that_o at_o last_o the_o precedent_n say_v he_o be_v weary_a of_o these_o priest_n and_o their_o absurdity_n still_o renew_v their_o old_a complaint_n without_o be_v willing_a to_o hear_v reason_n on_o this_o occasion_n there_o pass_v several_a letter_n between_o a._n b._n and_o the_o superintendant_n nieman_n but_o he_o will_v y●eld_v as_o little_o to_o reason_n and_o equity_n as_o he_o think_v it_o dishonourable_a for_o a_o learned_a doctor_n to_o yield_v to_o a_o maid_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n these_o letter_n to_o he_o be_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n lxxii_o faith_n the_o precedent_n find_v he_o to_o be_v as_o unreasonable_a as_o the_o rest_n see_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v with_o they_o and_o advise_v she_o to_o make_v and_o present_v to_o his_o highness_n a_o short_a confession_n of_o her_o faith_n because_o great_a man_n be_v not_o take_v up_o in_o the_o read_n of_o controversy_n and_o so_o her_o reply_v and_o duply_v with_o the_o priest_n will_v be_v of_o little_a use_n but_o a_o short_a confession_n of_o faith_n will_v confound_v their_o lie_n and_o convince_v the_o prince_n she_o do_v so_o and_o it_o be_v already_o set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o apology_n after_o this_o people_z be_v entire_o persuade_v of_o her_o innocence_n and_o that_o the_o pastors_n accusation_n be_v slander_n though_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o say_v that_o her_o profession_n be_v contrary_a to_o her_o sentiment_n and_o will_v catch_v at_o and_o tear_v out_o piece_n of_o sentence_n in_o her_o write_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o what_o they_o do_v or_o can_v cite_v out_o of_o her_o write_n contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o this_o confession_n be_v fundamental_o dismember_v and_o false_o interpret_v and_o the_o consequence_n they_o may_v draw_v from_o her_o write_n contrary_a to_o this_o confession_n be_v false_a consequence_n which_o she_o whole_o disclaim_v and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n obscure_a and_o ambiguous_a in_o her_o write_n it_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o sense_n and_o signification_n agreeable_a to_o this_o confession_n which_o be_v the_o key_n the_o rule_n the_o substance_n and_o the_o abridgement_n of_o all_o her_o write_n lxxiii_o prevail_v yet_o the_o churchman_n prevail_v so_o far_o at_o court_n as_o to_o protract_v the_o affair_n of_o her_o establishment_n at_o noordstrand_n and_o to_o make_v they_o relent_v and_o at_o last_o give_v over_o their_o inclination_n to_o do_v her_o justice_n upon_o which_o she_o open_o declare_v her_o sentiment_n to_o the_o court_n in_o write_v that_o god_n have_v express_o send_v she_o into_o the_o country_n of_o holstein_n that_o she_o may_v there_o lead_v a_o retire_a and_o christian_a life_n with_o her_o friend_n and_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o take_v in_o his_o protection_n the_o country_n that_o shall_v receive_v she_o and_o to_o shed_v his_o blessing_n there_o while_o hi●_n plague_n shall_v be_v feel_v over_o all_o the_o earth_n that_o for_o this_o effect_n she_o desire_v they_o will_v let_v she_o go_v into_o the_o isle_n of_o noordstrand_n to_o the_o succession_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n which_o the_o orator●_n detain_v unjust_o from_o she_o and_o that_o she_o may_v there_o enjoy_v the_o liberty_n and_o privilege_n
to_o all_o the_o world_n by_o a_o great_a many_o eulogy_n of_o all_o sort_n that_o man_n all_o may_v extol_v she_o and_o adhere_v to_o she_o for_o the_o make_v up_o of_o a_o new_a sect._n in_o the_o second_o he_o give_v this_o idea_n of_o herself_o as_o if_o her_o great_a design_n be_v to_o boast_v that_o she_o be_v endue_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o prerogative_n that_o she_o may_v draw_v soul_n to_o follow_v she_o as_o if_o she_o aim_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o party_n in_o religion_n and_o to_o draw_v disciple_n after_o she_o now_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o false_a than_o all_o this_o for_o the_o friend_n of_o a._n b._n have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o to_o seek_v after_o the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 2._o and_o have_v find_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n most_o pure_o and_o save_o represent_v in_o the_o write_n and_o conversation_n of_o a._n b._n they_o do_v high_o value_v they_o and_o endeavour_v to_o conform_v their_o heart_n and_o liu●_n unto_o they_o 3._o they_o desire_v that_o these_o truth_n in_o 〈◊〉_d purity_n and_o force_n may_v be_v communicate_v unto_o other_o 〈◊〉_d the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n 4._o and_o therefore_o think_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o vindicate_v the_o author_n from_o the_o many_o aspersion_n calumny_n and_o reproach●●_n cast_v upon_o she_o at_o the_o instigation_n of_o satan_n by_o wicked_a and_o malicious_a man_n by_o declare_v what_o they_o have_v see_v and_o know_v for_o many_o year_n of_o this_o virgin_n that_o so_o the_o weak_a might_n 〈◊〉_d be_v fright_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o malicious_a 〈◊〉_d of_o slanderer_n as_o for_o a._n b._n herself_o the_o bent_n of_o her_o 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o live_v retire_v with_o god_n and_o to_o conceal_v rather_o 〈◊〉_d publish_v his_o grace_n to_o her_o soul_n and_o thus_o she_o do_v for_o 〈◊〉_d than_o fifty_o year_n and_o will_v have_v do_v so_o still_o have_v 〈◊〉_d god_n command_v and_o providence_n order_v she_o such_o 〈◊〉_d zion_n as_o oblige_v she_o to_o publish_v these_o truth_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d present_a there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n upon_o earth_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d what_o mean_v the_o spirit_n of_o true_a christianity_n be_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o true_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o 〈◊〉_d disguise_v by_o the_o gloss_n of_o men._n 3._o that_o they_o who_o 〈◊〉_d not_o sincere_o labour_v after_o this_o will_v be_v short_o 〈…〉_z by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n the_o various_a 〈…〉_z and_o objection_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o she_o 〈…〉_z to_o declare_v several_a other_o truth_n in_o vindication_n of_o 〈…〉_z and_o doctrine_n and_o thus_o she_o be_v oblige_v to_o declare_v to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n who_o make_v use_v of_o weak_a and_o simple_a i_o 〈◊〉_d confound_v the_o wise_a have_v send_v she_o to_o make_v know●_n 〈◊〉_d truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o other_o that_o by_o the_o 〈…〉_z god_n those_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o she_o from_o the_o do_n of_o which_o they_o excuse_v themselves_o as_o if_o they_o be_v impossible_a too_o other_o she_o be_v oblige_v to_o speak_v of_o god_n mission_n his_o call_n to_o teach_v other_o and_o the_o gift_n and_o capacity_n he_o bestow_v for_o that_o end_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o obstacle_n in_o she_o to_o hinder_v other_o from_o embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o clear_v herself_o from_o the_o reproachful_a calumny_n and_o lie_v form_v against_o she_o by_o the_o contrary_a virtue_n and_o favour_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v on_o she_o and_o by_o the_o unquestionable_a evidence_n and_o testimony_n of_o those_o to_o who_o she_o be_v well_o know_v this_o be_v true_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o these_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o reason_n which_o lead_v both_o she_o and_o her_o friend_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bestow_v on_o she_o xix_o narration_n the_o doctor_n be_v first_o narrative_n contain_v his_o character_n of_o a._n b._n take_v as_o he_o say_v from_o her_o friend_n with_o his_o inference_n from_o it_o and_o then_o his_o collection_n of_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o have_v such_o sentiment_n of_o she_o with_o his_o censure_n of_o they_o in_o the_o first_o there_o be_v not_o one_o instance_n of_o a_o fair_a and_o ingenuous_a narration_n but_o many_o of_o great_a injustice_n disingenuity_n and_o foul_a deal_v most_o unbecoming_a a_o writer_n of_o narratives_n for_o xx._n character_n 1._o place_n the_o method_n he_o follow_v palpable_o discover_v that_o his_o great_a aim_n be_v to_o blacken_v she_o if_o one_o design_v to_o make_v a_o beautiful_a person_n appear_v ugly_a he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o more_o effectual_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v first_o deprive_v she_o of_o all_o life_n and_o spirit_n then_o take_v off_o the_o skin_n of_o the_o body_n and_o dismember_v it_o all_o in_o piece_n and_o quite_o invert_v the_o order_n of_o its_o part_n and_o take_v withal_o only_o some_o bit_n of_o it_o to_o set_v they_o together_o and_o at_o last_o bespatter_n all_o with_o filth_n and_o hospital_n cry_v here_o be_v the_o woman_n and_o such_o be_v the_o doctor_n be_v singular_a way_n of_o make_v character_n they_o who_o have_v reap_v great_a spiritual_a advantage_n from_o the_o write_n and_o conversation_n of_o any_o person_n do_v speak_v of_o such_o a_o person_n with_o more_o esteem_n and_o admiration_n than_o other_o who_o not_o have_v have_v such_o experience_n will_v think_v their_o expression_n extravagant_a especial_o when_o half_a sentence_n be_v take_v out_o by_o themselves_o and_o piece_v with_o other_o at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o they_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o doctor_n be_v way_n of_o make_v up_o the_o character_n of_o a._n b._n skip_v from_o one_o book_n to_o another_o from_o one_o chapter_n to_o another_o to_o pick_v out_o the_o half_a sentence_n that_o may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o his_o evil_a design_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o narrative_n he_o take_v out_o little_a passage_n of_o her_o life_n here_o and_o there_o without_o narrate_v ingenuous_o the_o true_a circumstance_n of_o they_o he_o dress_v they_o up_o with_o his_o fine_a reflection_n and_o so_o expose_v they_o to_o the_o world_n as_o a_o character_n of_o her_o life_n the_o answer_n he_o give_v to_o this_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o his_o friend_n at_o london_n art_n fourteen_o be_v frivolous_a and_o needs_o no_o reply_n it_o show_v only_o how_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o ingenuous_o confess_v a_o real_a and_o a_o heinous_a sin_n 2._o enemy_n the_o doctor_n be_v foul_a deal_v appear_v far_a in_o make_v up_o this_o character_n by_o borrow_a piece_n of_o it_o not_o from_o her_o own_o or_o her_o friend_n write_n but_o from_o those_o of_o she_o and_o their_o avow_a enemy_n as_o the_o next_o day_n some_o of_o the_o doctor_n be_v temper_v and_o acquaintance_n will_v it_o may_v be_v take_v her_o character_n as_o give_v by_o her_o friend_n upon_o his_o word_n and_o so_o fill_v it_o with_o horrid_a untruth_n thus_o he_o take_v 75._o a_o part_n of_o their_o character_n of_o she_o from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o leipsick_a transaction_n which_o part_n be_v show_v to_o be_v a_o most_o abominable_a falsehood_n in_o the_o monitum_fw-la ad_fw-la acta_fw-la erudit_fw-la leips_n and_o what_o regard_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o testimony_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o collector_n of_o the_o leipsick_a act_n in_o this_o matter_n appear_v by_o the_o account_n of_o a_o friend_n of_o he_o who_o speak_v thus_o of_o that_o subject_a firmiter_fw-la persuasus_fw-la sum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la bourignoniam_fw-la virginem_fw-la pussimam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_o firm_o persuade_v that_o the_o virgin_n a._n bourignon_fw-fr be_v most_o pious_a and_o her_o heart_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n her_o doctrine_n as_o to_o the_o main_a be_v holy_a and_o sound_a and_o her_o book_n most_o worthy_a to_o be_v peruse_v by_o the_o serious_a as_o to_o her_o sentiment_n concern_v some_o mystery_n she_o write_v no_o doubt_n according_a to_o her_o persuasion_n and_o it_o savour_v nothing_o of_o folly_n or_o enthusiasm_n if_o you_o shall_v read_v her_o write_n without_o prejudice_n ●and_v a_o sectarian_a infallibility_n even_o though_o you_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n yourself_o i_o impute_v it_o to_o human_a weakness_n if_o she_o think_v that_o no_o body_n will_v be_v save_v but_o they_o who_o embrace_v her_o sentiment_n yet_o she_o herself_o use_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o sentiment_n about_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n the_o collector_n of_o the_o leipsick_a act_n have_v pass_v a_o severe_a censure_n against_o she_o and_o our_o author_n m._n poiret_fw-la yet_o i_o know_v the_o author_n of_o that_o severe_a censure_n write_v
according_a to_o his_o persuasion_n i_o get_v at_o a_o public_a auction_n that_o copy_n of_o the_o work_n of_o a._n b._n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o censure_n make_v use_v of_o and_o with_o great_a wonder_n i_o observe_v the_o weakness_n of_o man._n the_o author_n be_v a_o wise_a man_n of_o great_a judgement_n and_o sincerity_n but_o what_o can_v prejudices_fw-la do_v that_o grow_v up_o with_o we_o i_o find_v many_o place_n mark_v with_o a_o little_a line_n on_o the_o margin_n which_o if_o you_o consider_v they_o alone_o can_v but_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a._n b._n look_v suspicious_a yea_o blasphemous_a but_o if_o you_o join_v they_o with_o what_o go_v before_o and_o follow_v after_o in_o her_o write_n they_o have_v a_o excellent_a and_o pious_a sense_n the_o author_n who_o while_o he_o live_v be_v most_o dear_a to_o i_o and_o who_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o honour_v now_o he_o be_v dead_a have_v such_o prudence_n judgement_n and_o sincerity_n that_o he_o will_v never_o have_v make_v such_o exception_n if_o the_o preconceived_a opinion_n of_o a_o sect_n as_o it_o daily_o happen_v t●_n other_o have_v not_o bewitch_v he_o nevertheless_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o if_o he_o have_v live_v till_o now_o he_o will_v have_v come_v to_o see_v his_o error_n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o dr._n christianus_n thomasius_n counsellor_n to_o the_o elector_n of_o brandenbourg_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o university_n of_o hale_n in_o saxony_n and_o be_v publish_v in_o one_o of_o his_o discourse_n before_o the_o treatise_n de_fw-fr erudition_n solida_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v reprint_v in_o germany_n and_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o doctor_n cockbourn_n and_o his_o friend_n may_v impartial_o consider_v it_o and_o it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o let_v they_o see_v their_o mistake_v 3._o translation_n so_o zealous_a be_v the_o doctor_n to_o blacken_v she_o that_o to_o complete_a the_o extravagancy_n of_o the_o character_n he_o venture_v to_o translate_v their_o word_n false_o and_o even_o of_o those_o false_a translation_n will_v tack_n together_o two_o half_a sentence_n that_o be_v more_o than_o a_o page_n distant_a in_o the_o original_a as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o blasphemous_a way_n that_o he_o represent_v they_o in_o one_o breath_n thus_o narr_n 1._o p._n 4._o lin_v 7_o 8_o 9_o he_o make_v the_o author_n of_o the_o continuation_n of_o her_o life_n say_v of_o she_o she_o be_v the_o divine_a sun_n of_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o same_o breath_n she_o be_v pure_a truth_n and_o the_o only_a truth_n that_o can_v guide_v one_o to_o heaven_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o if_o he_o have_v affirm_v both_o of_o she_o and_o both_o in_o one_o period_n whereas_o they_o be_v in_o two_o different_a paragraph_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o she_o the_o first_o be_v a_o petition_n put_v up_o to_o almighty_a god_n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o vie_v continuée_v p._n 599._o that_o he_o will_v please_v to_o fix_v he_o in_o the_o heaven_n of_o his_o truth_n that_o the_o dragon_n may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o cast_v he_o upon_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o violence_n nor_o by_o his_o artifice_n that_o say_v he_o i_o may_v then_o always_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o the_o divine_a sun_n of_o righteousness_n in_o which_o thou_o have_v place_v thy_o handmaid_n and_o then_o in_o the_o next_o section_n when_o he_o have_v appeal_v unto_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n concern_v his_o integrity_n in_o seek_v after_o truth_n and_o his_o impartiality_n in_o examine_v the_o life_n and_o write_n of_o a._n b._n concern_v his_o readiness_n to_o disprove_v if_o he_o can_v with_o all_o the_o application_n of_o his_o mind_n have_v find_v any_o thing_n in_o they_o favour_v corruption_n or_o sin_n or_o contrary_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n he_o continue_v his_o appeal_n in_o these_o word_n be_v it_o not_o with_o the_o utmost_a sincerity_n of_o my_o heart_n that_o i_o protest_v open_o that_o the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n have_v be_v with_o a_o incomparable_a purity_n clearness_n and_o solidity_n in_o this_o soul_n which_o thou_o have_v sanctify_v and_o be_v yet_o in_o her_o write_n certain_o the_o way_n that_o be_v recommend_v there_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v the_o only_a and_o true_a way_n this_o be_v the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n to_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o it_o entire_o for_o this_o be_v truth_n itself_o this_o be_v the_o truth_n this_o be_v the_o pure_a truth_n thus_o we_o see_v there_o can_v be_v a_o more_o palpable_a disingenuity_n in_o cite_v and_o translate_n than_o this_o be_v which_o can_v bear_v no_o apology_n b●t_v a_o ingenuous_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pevarication_n again_o nar._n 1._o p._n 9_o lin_v 18._o he_o make_v m._n the_o cort_n complain_v that_o no_o body_n make_v prayer_n to_o she_o in_o the_o time_n of_o universal_a scourge_v the_o original_a be_v ni_fw-fr la_fw-fr point_fw-fr fair_a prior_n and_o the_o true_a translation_n be_v they_o do_v not_o desire_v she_o to_o pray_v i_o shall_v not_o inquire_v what_o sense_n the_o doctor_n will_v have_v the_o reader_n put_v upon_o his_o translation_n but_o must_v say_v that_o he_o himself_o shall_v not_o have_v aggravate_v his_o gild_n by_o call_v that_o a_o close_a and_o literal_a translation_n art_n xiii_o of_o his_o letter_n when_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o be_v both_o a_o false_a and_o a_o foul_a one_o again_o nar._n 1._o p._n 17._o he_o make_v the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n apologet._n prefix_v to_o her_o life_n pag._n 97._o say_v that_o a._n b._n be_v the_o pure_a most_o disintere_v and_o self_n deny_v soul_n and_o the_o most_o resign_v to_o god_n that_o ever_o be_v upon_o earth_n the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a be_v or_o je_fw-fr puis_fw-fr dire_fw-fr avec_fw-fr verity_n que_fw-la m._n bour._n estoit_fw-fr une_fw-fr ame_fw-fr des_fw-fr plus_fw-fr pures_fw-fr des_fw-fr plus_fw-fr degagées_fw-fr etc._n etc._n and_o the_o true_a translation_n thus_o that_o she_o be_v one_o among_o the_o soul_n which_o have_v be_v most_o pure_a etc._n etc._n his_o false_a translation_n will_v have_v he_o to_o exalt_v she_o above_o all_o humane_a creature_n the_o true_a list_v she_o only_o among_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o first_o form_n among_o the_o hundred_o forty_o four_o thousand_o which_o follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o go_v 14_o again_o nar._n 1._o p._n 74._o form_v a_o argument_n against_o her_o chastity_n from_o a_o passage_n of_o her_o life_n and_o her_o own_o account_n of_o it_o la_fw-fr parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr n._n 158._o and_o by_o the_o way_n i_o must_v say_v that_o no_o lover_n of_o purity_n will_v have_v pervert_v this_o passage_n to_o the_o sense_n that_o he_o have_v do_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o embrace_n of_o parent_n and_o child_n that_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o defile_v the_o imagination_n of_o a_o soul_n such_o as_o she_o be_v in_o a_o true_o regenerate_v state_n and_o in_o a_o profound_a recollection_n and_o communion_n with_o god_n he_o false_o translate_v the●_n last_o part_n of_o it_o the_o original_a be_v je_fw-fr pensay_v de_fw-fr concevor_fw-la cinque_fw-fr personage_n que_fw-fr je_fw-fr tiens_fw-fr gens_fw-fr de_fw-fr bien_fw-fr the_o true_a version_n i_o think_v i_o conceive_v five_o person_n who_o i_o reckon_v to_o be_v good_a men._n but_o the_o doctor_n must_v render_v it_o five_o comely_a person_n that_o it_o may_v serve_v his_o design_n and_o afford_v matter_n for_o impure_a jest_n 4._o evidence_n it_o be_v no_o fair_a deal_n in_o a_o narrater_n to_o affirm_v thing_n as_o speak_v or_o write_v by_o other_o in_o his_o own_o word_n without_o give_v evidence_n for_o they_o but_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o own_o word_n tell_v we_o 2._o that_o if_o she_o may_v be_v believe_v christ_n only_o lay_v the_o foundation_n for_o her_o work_n and_o do_v no_o more_o but_o prepare_v the_o way_n for_o her_o design_n that_o the_o last_o and_o great_a manifestation_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n power_n love_n and_o goodness_n be_v reserve_v to_o she_o and_o therefore_o she_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o great_a person_n than_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o and_o 3._o say_v he_o if_o we_o will_v take_v the_o word_n of_o the_o anonymous_n author_n of_o la_fw-fr vie_fw-fr continuee_n and_o some_o other_o this_o woman_n be_v above_o all_o that_o be_v humane_a that_o god_n design_v she_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a blessing_n that_o ever_o be_v confer_v on_o mankind_n that_o they_o set_v she_o on_o the_o same_o level_n with_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o draw_v a_o parallel_n betwixt_o he_o and_o she_o and_o do_v make_v he_o the_o type_n of_o she_o
life_n by_o motive_n and_o principle_n of_o religion_n but_o by_o her_o own_o humour_n she_o resolve_v upon_o a_o celibate_n life_n only_o because_o she_o will_v not_o be_v cross_v etc._n etc._n but_o the_o doctor_n set_v this_o in_o a_o false_a light_n as_o he_o do_v every_o thing_n else_o that_o concern_v she_o the_o true_a case_n be_v this_o when_o she_o be_v a_o child_n it_o trouble_v she_o to_o see_v her_o father_n sometime_o so_o rough_a to_o her_o mother_n and_o when_o he_o be_v in_o wrath_n she_o will_v run_v and_o embrace_v his_o knee_n to_o appease_v he_o and_o then_o will_v retire_v and_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v never_o suffer_v she_o to_o marry_v but_o that_o he_o will_v take_v she_o for_o his_o spouse_n this_o be_v before_o her_o turn_n aside_o from_o god_n to_o divert_v herself_o with_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o 18_o year_n of_o her_o age_n she_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o deep_a remorse_n for_o her_o stray_v from_o god_n and_o lead_v a_o life_n of_o most_o severe_a penitence_n for_o seven_o year_n so_o that_o other_o consideration_n do_v then_o affect_v she_o and_o draw_v she_o to_o a_o state_n of_o celibacy_n as_o for_o the_o doctor_n be_v immodest_a insinuation_n upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o his_o own_o conscience_n to_o check_v he_o for_o they_o but_o for_o the_o other_o reason_n he_o give_v for_o her_o celibacy_n that_o she_o undervalue_v all_o she_o see_v and_o can_v find_v none_o of_o merit_n enough_o to_o deserve_v she_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v pure_o his_o own_o invention_n without_o the_o least_o ground_n give_v for_o it_o in_o her_o life_n or_o write_n or_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n and_o will_v be_v judge_v by_o every_o inquire_a reader_n to_o be_v a_o malicious_a and_o wilful_a calumny_n 3._o parent_n a_o three_o evidence_n against_o her_o sanctity_n be_v say_v he_o her_o disobedience_n to_o her_o parent_n contrary_a to_o who_o express_a command_n she_o be_v importunate_a to_o go_v into_o a_o cloister_n and_o when_o that_o will_v not_o do_v steal_v away_o from_o her_o father_n house_n private_o he_o exaggerate_v this_o matter_n great_o but_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o one_o reason_n he_o bring_v which_o determine_v the_o case_n clear_o on_o her_o side_n if_o the_o case_n have_v be_v say_v he_o about_o turn_v christian_a she_o ou●ht_v to_o have_v do_v it_o even_o without_o a_o particular_a revelation_n whether_o her_o father_n will_v or_o not_o the_o case_n be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o she_o and_o a_o particular_a command_n from_o god_n to_o strengthen_v it_o she_o see_v she_o can_v not_o become_v a_o true_a christian_a without_o abandon_v the_o world_n and_o that_o while_o she_o be_v in_o her_o father_n house_n she_o can_v not_o sufficient_o disengage_v herself_o from_o it_o and_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o obey_v jesus_n christ_n who_o bid_v we_o forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o all_o that_o we_o have_v for_o his_o sake_n our_o lord_n call_v james_n and_o john_n the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n from_o wait_v on_o their_o father_n and_o they_o forsake_v all_o and_o follow_v he_o 4._o suit_v the_o doctor_n triumph_v great_o in_o his_o four_o instance_n her_o sue_v her_o father_n at_o law_n to_o divide_v his_o good_n with_o she_o after_o his_o second_o marriage_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v he_o say_v with_o common_a measure_n of_o grace_n and_o good_a nature_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o inordinate_a love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o can_v not_o be_v manage_v without_o great_a disrespect_n to_o her_o father_n the_o doctor_n be_v passion_n make_v he_o so_o disingenuous_a in_o every_o thing_n that_o relate_v to_o this_o virgin_n that_o it_o will_v nor_o be_v think_v strange_a to_o tell_v that_o he_o be_v manifest_o so_o in_o this_o instance_n mr._n poiret_n reply_n to_o this_o be_v so_o full_a in_o the_o forementioned_a letter_n to_o a_o friend_n i_o need_v only_o adduce_v it_o for_o her_o vindication_n and_o this_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o doctor_n think_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o who_o continue_v her_o life_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o this_o passage_n though_o she_o give_v a_o account_n of_o it_o herself_o be_v because_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o justify_v it_o it_o be_v not_o true_a say_v he_o m._n poiret_fw-la that_o i_o have_v any_o interest_n to_o defend_v the_o life_n and_o action_n of_o mrs._n a._n b._n by_o a_o legacy_n which_o she_o leave_v i_o as_o the_o narrator_n say_v she_o do_v not_o leave_v i_o in_o legacy_n to_o the_o value_n of_o a_o penny_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o to_o justice_n and_o charity_n than_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o law-suit_n of_o mrs._n a._n b._n with_o her_o father_n and_o step_v mother_n i_o pray_v god_n he_o may_v not_o have_v act_v malicious_o against_o his_o knowledge_n in_o the_o judgement_n that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o english_a and_o scot_n to_o make_v of_o her_o civil_a action_n who_o civil_a law_n be_v different_a from_o those_o of_o her_o country_n it_o may_v be_v it_o will_v be_v a_o crime_n in_o england_n or_o scotland_n for_o a_o young_a daughter_n after_o her_o mother_n death_n to_o require_v by_o law_n of_o her_o father_n the_o good_n of_o her_o decease_a mother_n but_o in_o france_n where_o among_o citizen_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o son_n or_o daughter_n elder_a or_o young_a it_o be_v the_o law_n and_o custom_n in_o many_o place_n that_o after_o the_o decease_n of_o the_o mother_n her_o good_n be_v tak●n_v from_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o father_n and_o put_v under_o other_o curator_n to_o be_v after_o equal_o divide_v among_o the_o child_n and_o in_o mrs._n a_o b's_n country_n the_o law_n be_v that_o the_o widow-husband_n can_v marry_v again_o until_o he_o first_o divide_v with_o the_o child_n of_o the_o first_o marriage_n and_o give_v they_o their_o mother_n good_n and_o to_o refuse_v this_o be_v to_o violate_v law_n and_o justice_n now_o this_o be_v what_o the_o father_n of_o a._n b._n do_v who_o injustice_n our_o doctor_n think_v fit_a to_o justify_v and_o for_o this_o end_n to_o suppress_v change_n and_o fal●ifie_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o affair_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o have_v read_v of_o it_o to_o render_v mrs._n a._n b._n faulty_a and_o impious_a against_o her_o father_n he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o law_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o place_n 49._o though_o they_o be_v express_o mention_v in_o her_o ac●count_n of_o the_o affair_n according_a to_o which_o the_o father_n be_v the_o breaker_n of_o they_o and_o the_o daughter_n will_v have_v they_o observe_v he_o say_v the_o father_n will_v have_v maintain_v she_o in_o his_o house_n but_o he_o do_v not_o tell_v that_o his_o new_a wife_n who_o he_o have_v take_v clandestin_o though_o she_o be_v but_o a_o poor_a girl_n without_o wit_n or_o virtue_n study_v to_o waste_n and_o consume_v the_o good_n of_o a._n b._n persecute_v she_o for_o the_o four_o month_n she_o stay_v with_o her_o father_n in_o so_o continual_a and_o cruel_a a_o manner_n as_o can_v be_v express_v 〈…〉_z mrs._n a._n b._n see_v and_o experience_v that_o this_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o her_o recollection_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o mrs._n a._n b._n be_v picque_v because_o her_o father_n refuse_v her_o money_n but_o do_v not_o tell_v that_o her_o father_n be_v then_o in_o a_o most_o plentiful_a condition_n 57_o that_o as_o for_o herself_o she_o have_v not_o a_o penny_n that_o she_o ask_v only_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o she_o that_o he_o irritate_v by_o his_o wife_n be_v so_o cruel_a as_o not_o to_o assist_v she_o with_o a_o penny_n when_o she_o be_v dangerous_o sick_a that_o for_o want_v of_o convenience_n she_o be_v oblige_v to_o lie_v under_o a_o roof_n when_o the_o snow_n and_o cold_n deprive_v she_o even_o of_o the_o night_n rest_n 54._o so_o that_o stranger_n be_v move_v to_o give_v she_o alms._n he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o she_o enter_v into_o a_o law_n sure_a against_o her_o father_n of_o her_o own_o head_n and_o therefore_o say_v that_o her_o sister_n be_v already_o dead_a and_o that_o her_o brother-in-law_n persuade_v she_o to_o proceed_v hope_v afterward_o to_o wheedle_n she_o out_o of_o it_o all_o which_o be_v false_a her_o marry_a sister_n be_v yet_o live_v and_o live_v five_o year_n thereafter_o and_o about_o four_o year_n after_o her_o husband_n 51._o the_o half_a of_o the_o mother_n good_n belong_v to_o the_o sister_n and_o her_o husband_n they_o resolve_v to_o require_v their_o father_n to_o deliver_v they_o to_o who_o they_o do_v not_o appertain_v 180._o and_o it_o be_v only_o by_o
must_v be_v own_v that_o she_o consult_v man_n and_o book_n very_o little_a for_o she_o have_v both_o in_o great_a contempt_n and_o yet_o within_o eight_o line_n he_o say_v that_o her_o sublime_a thought_n be_v suggest_v by_o her_o conversation_n with_o other_o by_o sermon_n which_o she_o hear_v and_o by_o conference_n with_o confessor_n priest_n and_o learned_a men._n the_o doctor_n who_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o fasten_v contradiction_n upon_o other_o will_v do_v well_o to_o clear_v himself_o of_o they_o here_o he_o seem_v to_o contradict_v himself_o with_o his_o pen_n in_o his_o hand_n o_o but_o say_v he_o no_o matter_n how_o she_o come_v by_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v solid_a and_o true_a but_o if_o they_o be_v both_o solid_a and_o true_a it_o be_v certain_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o consider_v both_o they_o and_o the_o source_n of_o they_o his_o calumny_n of_o her_o despise_v the_o scripture_n be_v already_o answer_v it_o have_v be_v good_a the_o doctor_n have_v give_v we_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o the_o fine_a thought_n of_o the_o metaphysical_a mean_a person_n of_o his_o neighbour_n parish_n he_o have_v be_v unkind_a to_o his_o acquaintance_n there_o that_o he_o never_o let_v they_o know_v of_o this_o fine_a wit_n he_o may_v have_v give_v a_o narrative_a of_o he_o in_o bourignianisin_n detect_v as_o for_o the_o singular_a talent_n of_o his_o weaver_n he_o may_v meet_v with_o such_o in_o every_o parish_n xxviii_o 〈…〉_z one_o of_o his_o great_a talent_n in_o his_o narrative_n lie_v in_o make_v long_o common_a place_n and_o then_o give_v such_o a_o turn_n to_o some_o expression_n of_o a._n b._n or_o of_o her_o friend_n as_o may_v amuse_v the_o reader_n and_o make_v he_o think_v that_o they_o act_n or_o write_v contrary_a to_o the_o virtue_n or_o divine_a truth_n about_o which_o he_o have_v be_v preach_v or_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o absurd_a thing_n he_o have_v be_v expose_v and_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o application_n he_o speak_v not_o truth_n in_o one_o article_n but_o h●s_v the_o art_n of_o darken_n and_o confound_a thing_n instead_o of_o put_v they_o in_o a_o true_a light_n this_o appear_v in_o his_o xxv_o article_n as_o well_o as_o in_o all_o the_o former_a it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o appearance_n of_o comet_n be_v give_v as_o a_o reason_n for_o have_v mrs._n a._n b._n in_o so_o high_a esteem_n for_o they_o be_v not_o mention_v as_o sign_n of_o she_o but_o as_o presage_n of_o the_o approach_a judgement_n of_o god_n which_o she_o also_o declare_v concern_v which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o vie_n continuè_fw-fr 6_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o regret_n that_o the_o devil_n shall_v prevail_v so_o far_o as_o to_o get_v book_n and_o sermon_n publish_v to_o efface_v our_o of_o man_n heart_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n judgement_n which_o may_v arise_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o such_o wonderful_a appearance_n 〈…〉_z by_o t●lling_v that_o comet_n be_v natural_a thing_n and_o so_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v apprehensive_a of_o they_o as_o if_o the_o great_a 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o inflict_v by_o natural_a mean_n as_o that_o author_n there_o consider_v to_o excellent_a purpose_n and_o as_o a._n b._n do_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v on_o the_o margin_n many_o sign_n say_v she_o have_v appear_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o star_n fearful_a comet_n menace_v great_a evil_n which_o do_v affright_v some_o at_o first_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o devil_n have_v leisure_n to_o make_v his_o adherent_n study_v to_o find_v out_o reason_n show_v that_o these_o be_v but_o natural_a thing_n he_o make_v the_o fear_n of_o these_o threaten_n of_o god_n send_v as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o his_o justice_n to_o evanish_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v man_n mock_v now_o at_o god_n warning_n call_v they_o natural_a thing_n the_o deluge_n be_v make_v by_o a_o natural_a rain_n and_o the_o last_o plague_n will_v be_v make_v by_o pestilence_n war_n famine_n and_o fire_n all_o natural_a thing_n but_o the_o devil_n to_o divert_v we_o from_o believe_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o last_o plague_n make_v it_o be_v say_v by_o his_o adherent_n that_o these_o be_v natural_a thing_n that_o no_o body_n may_v turn_v to_o repentance_n so_o nothing_o can_v occur_v more_o natural_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o life_n of_o such_o a_o person_n give_v warning_n of_o such_o approach_a judgement_n than_o to_o excite_v man_n also_o to_o consider_v god_n warning_n from_o the_o heaven_n from_o all_o which_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n for_o the_o doctor_n to_o make_v the_o inference_n which_o he_o do_v or_o to_o call_v his_o brother_n fool_n not_o fear_v the_o danger_n incur_v by_o so_o do_v but_o the_o doctor_n with_o his_o friend_n the_o author_n of_o pensces_n diverse_v sur_fw-fr les_fw-fr comet_n will_v tell_v we_o they_o be_v all_o the_o superstitious_a observer_n of_o comet_n who_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o presage_v of_o divine_a wrath_n and_o that_o eclipse_n be_v sometime_o as_o formidable_a and_o comet_n now_o come_v to_o be_v better_o understand_v and_o in_o all_o appearance_n the_o better_a they_o be_v understand_v they_o will_v become_v the_o more_o dreadful_a and_o terrible_a not_o only_o as_o presage_n and_o warning_n of_o god_n judgement_n but_o also_o as_o the_o most_o dreadful_a and_o immediate_a instrument_n of_o they_o xxix_o 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o true_a reason_n for_o which_o a._n b._n and_o her_o write_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o be_v not_o at_o all_o weaken_a by_o the_o doctor_n but_o rather_o confirm_v so_o neither_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n and_o m._n poiret_n be_v man_n lead_v by_o truth_n more_o than_o passion_n or_o fancy_n by_o all_o that_o he_o allege_v to_o the_o contrary_n what_o she_o say_v at_o the_o age_n of_o four_o year_n be_v so_o weighty_a a_o truth_n and_o the_o text_n of_o her_o whole_a life_n be_v most_o deserve_o lay_v before_o the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n by_o the_o author_n of_o her_o life_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o every_o good_a man_n will_v make_v of_o it_o will_v be_v to_o s●arch_v his_o own_o heart_n and_o not_o to_o lesten_z the_o weight_n and_o due_a impression_n of_o any_o of_o god_n call_n even_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o babe_n and_o suckling_n what_o he_o say_v to_o disparage_v the_o purity_n of_o her_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o of_o her_o life_n show_v only_o the_o disorder_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n who_o from_o spiritual_a thing_n study_n to_o excite_v in_o himself_o end_v other_o impute_v imagination_n unto_o the_o 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n be_v pure_a the_o contradiction_n he_o find_v out_o in_o m._n poiret_n lie_v only_o in_o his_o own_o fancy_n jesus_n christ_n the_o saint_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v certain_o send_v forth_o a_o odour_n of_o truth_n charity_n holiness_n chastity_n and_o of_o all_o virtue_n but_o this_o be_v not_o perceptible_a but_o only_o by_o they_o who_o be_v right_o dispose_v and_o who_o true_o seek_v god_n whereas_o they_o who_o love_n falshood_n and_o impurity_n be_v so_o far_o from_o feel_v those_o impresson_n that_o their_o passion_n be_v rather_o excite_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o the_o write_n and_o conversation_n of_o a._n b._n may_v make_v divine_a impression_n of_o charity_n and_o purity_n upon_o some_o and_o yet_o the_o spite_n and_o malice_n and_o evil_a passion_n of_o other_o may_v be_v thereby_o the_o more_o inflame_a and_o that_o this_o be_v neither_o a_o falsehood_n nor_o a_o contradiction_n daily_a experience_n do_v testify_v as_o to_o the_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o preface_n to_o m._n 75._o poiret_n divine_a aeconomie_n whosoever_o shall_v read_v it_o at_o length_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o preface_n itself_o will_v find_v the_o thought_n so_o just_a and_o so_o excellent_a that_o he_o will_v see_v the_o doctor_n have_v bewray_v only_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o own_o understanding_n in_o censure_v of_o it_o we_o see_v the_o art_n that_o be_v now_o most_o magnify_v for_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o upon_o which_o the_o mathematician_n do_v so_o much_o value_v themselves_o and_o i_o hope_v the_o the_o doctor_n be_v a_o friend_n to_o the_o mathematics_n though_o not_o to_o the_o metaphysic_n be_v that_o of_o shut_v out_o all_o idea_n foreign_a to_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n that_o the_o mind_n may_v search_v after_o the_o truth_n without_o respect_n to_o its_o former_a conception_n of_o it_o upon_o which_o the_o truth_n do_v not_o at_o all_o depend_v if_o there_o be_v unquestionable_a and_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o divine_a illumination_n of_o a_o person_n 76._o this_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o despise_v they_o or_o to_o disparage_v
and_o corinthus_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n extort_a from_o he_o by_o one_o who_o some_o time_n before_o have_v go_v over_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o because_o his_o change_n be_v disaprove_v by_o a._n b._n be_v enrage_v at_o she_o endeavour_v to_o divert_v well-meaning_a person_n from_o harken_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n contain_v in_o her_o write_n because_o it_o be_v not_o foretell_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n will_v communicate_v his_o grace_n to_o a_o woman_n for_o the_o renovation_n of_o his_o gospel_n spirit_n m._n poiret_n upon_o this_o occasion_n apply_v himself_o to_o show_v both_o the_o absurdity_n and_o falseness_n of_o the_o exception_n which_o otherways_o it_o may_v be_v will_v never_o have_v enter_v into_o his_o mind_n 2._o that_o the_o doctor_n here_o again_o fall_v into_o his_o ordinary_a method_n of_o connect_v very_o distinct_a passage_n together_o and_o leave_v out_o that_o which_o will_v put_v they_o into_o a_o right_a light_n as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o letter_n itself_o and_o false_o translate_n some_o part_n of_o it_o as_o that_o adam_n some_o time_n after_o his_o creation_n have_v brutal_a inclination_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o expression_n there_o 3._o that_o m._n p._n consider_v the_o thing_n only_o in_o thesi_fw-la what_o evidence_n the_o scripture_n give_v of_o god_n purpose_n and_o design_n to_o make_v womankind_n the_o instrument_n of_o his_o light_n and_o spirit_n to_o the_o world_n when_o the_o other_o sex_n man_n through_o his_o pride_n and_o wisdom_n have_v render_v himself_o uncapable_a of_o it_o 4._o that_o if_o the_o narrator_n have_v be_v so_o just_a as_o to_o have_v show_v the_o principle_n upon_o which_o m._n poiret_n proceed_v i_o be_o sure_a no_o candid_a reader_n will_v have_v subscribe_v the_o doctor_n be_v sentence_n they_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v from_o temoign_n 388._o des_fw-fr s._n ecrit_fw-fr that_o god_n be_v resolute_a in_o all_o his_o design_n and_o will_v at_o last_o bring_v they_o to_o pass_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n to_o all_o generation_n that_o god_n make_v man_n for_o true_a happiness_n in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o his_o god_n and_o that_o he_o persist_v in_o this_o design_n through_o all_o generation_n that_o adam_n begin_v soon_o after_o his_o creation_n to_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n to_o the_o creature_n god_n to_o prevent_v his_o total_a fall_n resolve_v to_o give_v he_o a_o helpmeet_a for_o he_o a_o woman_n in_o who_o the_o divine_a image_n shall_v shine_v that_o his_o soul_n may_v be_v thereby_o raise_v unto_o god_n that_o this_o first_o eve_n thwart_v his_o design_n by_o turn_v man_n far_o away_o from_o god_n yet_o he_o still_o persist_v in_o his_o design_n resolve_v to_o put_v his_o divine_a image_n in_o a_o woman_n and_o by_o she_o as_o by_o a_o second_o eve_n to_o reduce_v the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n 4●3_n and_o that_o according_o he_o give_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o enmity_n between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o that_o of_o the_o serpent_n gen_n 3._o 15._o that_o jesus_n christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v point_v out_o in_o this_o prophecy_n by_o these_o word_n i_o will_v put_v for_o it_o be_v he_o who_o speak_v in_o a_o glorious_a body_n and_o show_v that_o he_o will_v be_v the_o source_n of_o the_o enmity_n against_o the_o devil_n and_o sin_n that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o grace_n sanctification_n and_o all_o divine_a strength_n and_o virtue_n that_o we_o need_v against_o the_o enemy_n that_o the_o serpent_n head_n not_o be_v yet_o bruise_v jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v suppose_v far_a to_o fulfil_v this_o prophecy_n by_o make_v a_o woman_n his_o organ_n or_o instrument_n for_o exciting_a again_o and_o promote_a among_o man_n this_o enmity_n against_o the_o devil_n etc._n etc._n now_o what_o be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o that_o deserve_v excommunication_n as_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o a_o vile_a heretic_n not_o worthy_a to_o live_v blasphemy_n be_v to_o speak_v evil_a of_o god_n and_o heresy_n pertinacious_o to_o teach_v that_o which_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v very_o far_o from_o either_o 5._o the_o doctor_n ought_v to_o treat_v other_o with_o meekness_n and_o charity_n and_o equity_n lest_o he_o himself_o be_v tempt_v and_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o condemnation_n with_o which_o he_o unjust_o reproach_n other_o 165._o when_o he_o consider_v the_o reason_n why_o god_n be_v please_v to_o permit_v sin_n which_o be_v so_o disagreeable_a to_o himself_o and_o so_o pernicious_a to_o his_o creature_n he_o tell_v we_o god_n have_v not_o conceal_v from_o we_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o conduct_n his_o own_o glory_n be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o and_o by_o sin_n his_o glory_n be_v exceed_o manifest_v as_o he_o manifest_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o power_n by_o create_v many_o thing_n out_o of_o nothing_o so_o he_o demonstrate_v the_o infinity_n and_o vast_a wonderful_a reach_n of_o his_o wisdom_n in_o that_o he_o can_v bring_v good_a out_o of_o evil._n how_o can_v we_o have_v know_v god_n wonderful_a patience_n his_o meekness_n long_o suffer_v and_o forbearance_n and_o his_o strict_a and_o severe_a justice_n in_o distinguish_v the_o merit_n of_o person_n and_o thing_n if_o sin_n have_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o world_n what_o adorable_a instance_n of_o love_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n will_v have_v be_v want_v if_o sin_n have_v not_o give_v occasion_n for_o they_o if_o sin_n have_v not_o happen_v where_o will_v there_o have_v be_v place_n for_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n who_o will_v have_v dream_v of_o the_o stupendous_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n it_o may_v have_v be_v suspect_v without_o sin_n that_o god_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v under_o some_o inevitable_a fate_n but_o now_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v free_a that_o he_o can_v do_v what_o he_o please_v and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v manage_v by_o his_o wisdom_n if_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v admit_v god_n have_v have_v more_o honour_n and_o be_v more_o glorify_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n than_o by_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n i_o have_v stay_v long_o say_v he_o upon_o this_o but_o it_o be_v pardonable_a see_v the_o importance_n and_o intricacy_n of_o the_o subject_n require_v it_o and_o see_v some_o have_v write_v volume_n upon_o this_o alone_a which_o very_o few_o have_v clear_v to_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o sum_n you_o see_v of_o the_o doctor_n be_v resolution_n be_v that_o god_n decree_v and_o resolve_v to_o permit_v sin_n and_o wickedness_n in_o the_o world_n because_o by_o his_o way_n of_o manage_v it_o it_o will_v tend_v most_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o his_o perfection_n and_o attribute_n will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o conspicuous_a without_o it_o father_n forgive_v he_o for_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o doctor_n have_v write_v all_o this_o with_o a_o good_a intention_n but_o upon_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v blasphemy_n with_o a_o witness_n and_o a_o very_a unfit_a resolution_n for_o convince_a of_o the_o atheist_n and_o deist_n non_fw-la ipsa_fw-la peccata_fw-la say_v st._n augustin_n vel_fw-la ipsa_fw-la miseria_fw-la perfectioni_fw-la universitatis_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessaria_fw-la sed_fw-la animae_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la animae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la si_fw-la velint_fw-la peccant_a si_fw-la peccaverint_fw-la miserae_fw-la fiunt_fw-la a._n b_o be_v write_n which_o the_o doctor_n so_o much_o despise_v do_v clear_a the_o mystery_n of_o providence_n far_o more_o to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o divine_a attribute_n and_o to_o the_o conviction_n of_o our_o reason_n as_o many_o who_o do_v read_v they_o without_o prejudice_n be_v full_o persuade_v 6._o spirit_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o narrative_a as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v of_o a_o parallel_n draw_v up_o by_o a._n b._n betwixt_o she_o and_o jesus_n christ_n his_o misrepresentation_n and_o mistake_v lie_v in_o this_o that_o she_o call_v it_o a_o comparison_n not_o a_o parallel_n there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o in_o how_o many_o public_a sermon_n have_v the_o suffering_n and_o virtue_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o martyr_n be_v compare_v with_o those_o of_o his_o master_n jesus_n christ_n will_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o preacher_n intend_v to_o make_v a_o parallel_n betwixt_o they_o or_o to_o make_v jesus_n christ_n the_o type_n of_o he_o 2._o the_o comparison_n be_v between_o the_o second_o birth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o first_o birth_n and_o not_o betwixt_o he_o and_o a._n b._n he_o may_v speak_v as_o she_o say_v out_o of_o a_o bush_n or_o out_o of_o a_o
to_o it_o by_o his_o freewill_n so_o that_o if_o one_o at_o present_a do_v submit_v his_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n as_o jesus_n christ_n do_v he_o will_v certain_o feel_v the_o same_o operation_n of_o divine_a virtue_n that_o he_o feel_v in_o his_o soul_n and_o will_v likewise_o do_v the_o outward_a miracle_n that_o he_o do_v if_o there_o be_v need_n for_o they_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o lessen_v and_o his_o power_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o see_v he_o say_v that_o his_o delight_n be_v to_o be_v with_o the_o child_n of_o men._n he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o one_o singular_a man_n but_o of_o all_o man_n who_o submit_v their_o will_n to_o he_o and_o renounce_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o new_a which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n 11._o those_o will_v find_v sufficient_o by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n yea_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a and_o agreeable_a when_o they_o be_v denude_v of_o that_o old_a adam_n for_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o say_v that_o his_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o his_o burden_n light_n this_o truth_n itself_o can_v lie_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o bear_v this_o yoke_n but_o carnal_a person_n do_v certain_o lie_v while_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o imitate_v he_o since_o he_o do_v nothing_o as_o man_n but_o that_o which_o another_o man_n may_v do_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o g●d_n be_v impassable_a and_o can_v have_v endure_v the_o suffering_n of_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n it_o be_v his_o humanity_n only_o that_o suffer_v assi●●_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o tho●●_n that_o ask_v it_o see_v god_n be_v the_o common_a father_n of_o all_o man_n and_o promise_n to_o give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v it_o his_o promise_n be_v infallible_a the_o scripture_n assure_v we_o of_o this_o say_v heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o bring_v the_o comparison_n of_o a_o evil_a father_n who_o will_v not_o give_v his_o son_n a_o stone_n instead_o of_o bread_n nor_o a_o serpent_n for_o a_o high_a fish_n ask_v they_o how_o then_o shall_v not_o your_o hea●●●_n father_n give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o he_o who_o ask_v he_o 12._o true_o my_o dear_a child_n i_o can_v scarce_o reason_v more_o to_o make_v appear_v those_o truth_n which_o be_v so_o clear_a i_o have_v speak_v of_o they_o several_a time_n and_o they_o still_o bring_v i_o new_a argument_n to_o maintain_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o miserable_a time_n wherein_o man_n have_v invent_v so_o much_o silly_a stuff_n whereby_o to_o flatter_v such_o as_o themselves_o and_o to_o make_v they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o sentiment_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n false_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o may_v not_o use_v any_o endeavour_n to_o attain_v to_o it_o for_o it_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o endeavour_v that_o which_o be_v impossible_a therefore_o we_o see_v man_n to_o the_o e●●y_n of_o one_o another_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o pastime_n take_v their_o pleasure_n and_o heap_v up_o riches_n as_o if_o they_o be_v create_v for_o this_o look_v for_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o recompense_n for_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v very_o sad_a and_o will_v make_v many_o to_o be_v deceive_v at_o death_n who_o in_o this_o life_n think_v that_o they_o be_v good_a christian_n because_o they_o have_v not_o commit_v the_o gross_a sin_n of_o theft_n whoredom_n or_o drunkenness_n and_o have_v frequent_v church_n and_o sacrament_n prayer_n much_o and_o give_v much_o alm_n all_o this_o will_v avail_v nothing_o before_o god_n if_o we_o be_v not_o animate_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 13._o for_o god_n will_v know_v no_o man_n but_o those_o who_o at_o death_n shall_v be_v clothe_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v charitable_a humble_a poor_a in_o spirit_n in_o short_a adorn_v with_o all_o his_o virtue_n and_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n one_o must_v imitate_v he_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v for_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o a_o history_n to_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v out_o of_o curiosity_n but_o be_v all_o lesson_n which_o we_o must_v retain_v to_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n else_o we_o shall_v false_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_a which_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o person_n dead_a to_o the_o flesh_n to_o live_v unto_o the_o spirit_n or_o one_o who_o have_v renounce_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n to_o live_v renew_v into_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 14._o it_o be_v far_o more_o safe_a to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n have_v merit_v for_o we_o the_o grace_n of_o die_v to_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v live_v unto_o he_o than_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v satisfy_v all_o for_o we_o while_o we_o rest_v upon_o this_o false_a pillow_n abide_v in_o the_o sentiment_n of_o our_o nature_n eat_v drink_v and_o do_v all_o other_o thing_n according_a to_o our_o sensuality_n this_o be_v the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o perdition_n and_o many_o there_o be_v who_o walk_n in_o it_o but_o you_o my_o dear_a child_n take_v the_o narrow_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n even_o though_o there_o be_v few_o that_o walk_v in_o it_o every_o one_o will_v bear_v his_o own_o burden_n if_o your_o friend_n will_v not_o walk_v in_o it_o leave_v they_o rather_o than_o follow_v they_o see_v jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o we_o must_v can_v off_o the_o member_n or_o pluck_v out_o the_o eye_n that_o offend_v we_o and_o that_o he_o who_o leave_v not_o father_n and_o mother_n wife_n and_o child_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o i_o do_v not_o require_v of_o you_o the_o perfection_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v but_o that_o you_o tend_v to_o it_o and_o aspire_v after_o it_o as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o you_o in_o do_v of_o which_o you_o will_v oblige_v she_o to_o love_v you_o who_o subscribe_v herself_o you_o whole_o in_o god_n antho._n bourignon_fw-fr amsterdam_n july_n 1●th_n 1670._o letter_n iu._n that_o god_n do_v not_o pardon_v sin_n without_o penitence_n to_o the_o same_o wherein_o be_v declare_v that_o man_n fall_v every_o day_n of_o new_a into_o adam_n sin_n turn_v away_o from_o god_n to_o love_v the_o creature_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v save_v without_o be_v revive_v into_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v merit_v for_o we_o the_o grace_n to_o imitate_v he_o this_o letter_n be_v the_o eight_o of_o la_fw-fr lum_n nèe_v en_fw-fr tenebr_n part_n iii._o my_o dear_a child_n 1._o i_o wonder_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o your_o friend_n shall_v say_v that_o i_o reject_v the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o i_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o salvation_n see_v that_o i_o do_v not_o look_v for_o salvation_n for_o myself_o but_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o redeem_v we_o after_o that_o we_o have_v be_v all_o lose_v by_o sin_n and_o by_o it_o sell_v and_o deliver_v up_o into_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n 2._o for_o sin_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o turn_n away_o from_o god_n to_o turn_v towards_o the_o creature_n the_o angel_n do_v first_o thus_o turn_v away_o when_o they_o see_v themselves_o so_o beautiful_a and_o so_o perfect_a they_o be_v please_v in_o themselves_o desire_v to_o be_v like_a unto_o god_n and_o thus_o they_o become_v devil_n enemy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o his_o work_n look_v on_o they_o with_o envy_n and_o jealousy_n labour_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a to_o destroy_v and_o corrupt_v they_o therefore_o the_o devil_n tempt_v man_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o perceive_v his_o creation_n that_o he_o may_v hinder_v the_o design_n which_o god_n have_v of_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o and_o man_n by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o devil_n turn_v away_o from_o his_o god_n to_o regard_v the_o creature_n in_o regard_v of_o which_o he_o covet_v and_o love_v they_o against_o the_o prohibition_n of_o his_o god_n thus_o withdraw_v himself_o by_o his_o will_n to_o cleave_v to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o we_o do_v yet_o daily_o 3._o and_o this_o turn_n away_o from_o god_n be_v call_v sin_n which_o bring_v forth_o death_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n and_o to_o all_o man_n in_o he_o see_v adam_n have_v in_o his_o loin_n all_o the_o man_n that_o be_v
their_o purity_n notwithstanding_o their_o contradiction_n to_o man_n life_n in_o who_o hand_n they_o be_v to_o be_v a_o stand_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o most_o perfect_a doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o the_o standard_n by_o which_o all_o other_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o try_v and_o desire_v no_o body_n may_v receive_v her_o sentiment_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v agreeable_a thereunto_o and_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o withhold_a the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n as_o a_o heinous_a injustice_n and_o impiety_n though_o she_o do_v not_o think_v that_o god_n have_v bind_v up_o himself_o only_o to_o this_o way_n of_o communicate_v his_o light_n but_o may_v when_o he_o please_v immediate_o communicate_v the_o same_o to_o any_o person_n without_o the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o such_o person_n may_v forbear_v the_o read_n of_o they_o as_o she_o do_v without_o despise_v they_o as_o one_o need_v not_o be_v take_v up_o with_o read_v his_o friend_n letter_n when_o he_o be_v immediate_o converse_v with_o he_o and_o for_o a_o evidence_n of_o it_o she_o appeal_v to_o the_o truth_n which_o she_o declare_v be_v communicate_v to_o she_o by_o god_n if_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o those_o contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n xi_o notion_n the_o author_n come_v next_o to_o some_o of_o her_o opinion_n which_o she_o herself_o have_v often_o declare_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o which_o if_o men_n please_v they_o may_v count_v they_o dream_n and_o fancy_n he_o call_v they_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a and_o indeed_o as_o he_o conceive_v and_o represent_v they_o he_o will_v make_v some_o of_o they_o appear_v extravagant_a enough_o though_o a_o candid_a interpretation_n of_o they_o will_v render_v they_o both_o amiable_a and_o useful_a thus_o what_o wildness_n or_o barbarity_n be_v there_o in_o assert_v that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n be_v one_o that_o it_o be_v his_o spirit_n internal_o animate_v influence_v and_o inform_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o make_v they_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n or_o in_o assert_v that_o the_o last_o judgement_n by_o which_o she_o mean_v the_o universal_a plague_n by_o which_o god_n will_v in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n destroy_v the_o wicked_a from_o off_o the_o earth_n be_v at_o hand_n etc._n few_o who_o serious_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n will_v think_v this_o a_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a notion_n but_o the_o scoffer_n who_o walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n she_o maintain_v no_o mahometan_a paradise_n etc._n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o man_n will_v have_v enjoy_v in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n when_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v no_o lust_n or_o concupiscence_n unto_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v defile_v and_o unbelieving_a be_v nothing_o pure_a but_o even_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v defile_v she_o say_v with_o our_o saviour_n that_o the_o saint_n after_o the_o resurrection_n neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n but_o be_v as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n she_o condemn_v human_a learning_n no_o far_o than_o it_o foster_v pride_n amusement_n self-conceit_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n or_o curiosity_n and_o destroy_v charity_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o great_a absurdity_n in_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n think_v fit_a to_o appear_v in_o our_o human_a nature_n void_a of_o human_a learning_n no_o mathematician_n no_o philosopher_n nor_o critic_n than_o to_o say_v that_o he_o appear_v poor_a and_o despise_v of_o all_o not_o have_v where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n since_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o deny_v himself_o of_o all_o that_o we_o make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o vanity_n and_o concupiscence_n xii_o poiret_n what_o the_o author_n be_v please_v to_o say_v of_o m._n poiret_n that_o he_o be_v craze_v and_o be_v still_o so_o repute_v be_v utter_o false_a can_v do_v he_o no_o hurt_v with_o such_o as_o be_v either_o acquaint_v with_o himself_o or_o his_o write_n but_o it_o show_v that_o man_n passion_n will_v make_v they_o rash_o utter_v false_a and_o extravagant_a thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o believe_v for_o the_o author_n himself_o in_o the_o next_o page_n reckon_v he_o among_o the_o man_n of_o sense_n and_o learning_n who_o have_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o a._n b._n abroad_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o that_o some_o in_o britain_n admire_v his_o book_n for_o he_o be_v no_o superficial_a ramble_a writer_n as_o they_o discover_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a degree_n of_o sense_n and_o learning_n so_o they_o direct_v to_o the_o solid_a knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o true_a christianity_n free_a from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o party_n and_o the_o disguise_n of_o self-love_n and_o corrupt_a nature_n the_o charge_n of_o his_o deny_v the_o divine_a prescience_n be_v clear_v in_o the_o apology_n *_o etc._n they_o do_v also_o endeavour_v to_o make_v he_o odious_a by_o publish_v a_o expression_n which_o they_o say_v he_o use_v in_o a_o private_a conversation_n with_o two_o gentleman_n of_o their_o acquaintance_n m._n poiret_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o remember_v the_o conversation_n he_o have_v with_o all_o who_o come_v to_o see_v he_o nor_o if_o he_o have_v such_o a_o expression_n to_o any_o but_o that_o if_o he_o have_v those_o gentleman_n may_v think_v he_o have_v reason_n for_o what_o he_o speak_v and_o he_o be_v well_o please_v that_o all_o the_o world_n know_v it_o that_o as_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v so_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o a._n b._n be_v illuminate_v and_o inspire_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n both_o these_o be_v truth_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o look_v upon_o both_o as_o of_o equal_a moment_n or_o that_o he_o believe_v they_o upon_o equal_a ground_n xiii_o level_v after_o the_o author_n have_v form_v so_o grievous_a and_o unjust_a a_o charge_n lay_v aside_o a_o christian_a temper_n he_o proceed_v in_o his_o 8._o sect._n to_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n and_o excite_v other_o to_o fury_n and_o indignation_n and_o in_o his_o late_a book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o sin_n and_o heresy_n p._n 33._o he_o repeat_v over_o the_o same_o charge_n with_o all_o the_o hard_a word_n that_o spite_n and_o fury_n can_v invent_v and_o insinuate_v his_o fear_n of_o a_o grow_v sect_n and_o party_n it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v man_n more_o alarm_v and_o enrage_v against_o enemy_n create_v by_o their_o own_o fancy_n than_o they_o be_v against_o real_a one_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n be_v once_o out_o of_o the_o heat_n that_o his_o imagination_n have_v put_v he_o in_o it_o be_v easy_a i_o shall_v think_v to_o convince_v he_o that_o these_o he_o call_v bourignianists_n be_v no_o such_o enemy_n as_o he_o have_v fancy_v to_o himself_o i_o can_v assure_v he_o they_o do_v hearty_o own_o that_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n be_v obtain_v only_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o standard_n by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o try_v and_o examine_v all_o doctrine_n that_o no_o inspiration_n can_v come_v from_o god_n that_o do_v not_o fill_v the_o soul_n with_o humility_n and_o charity_n or_o that_o instill_v under_o the_o sheep_n clothing_n of_o devotion_n and_o piety_n any_o heresy_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o schism_n or_o to_o withdraw_v obedience_n from_o their_o lawful_a bishop_n or_o to_o set_v up_o new_a sect_n and_o that_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n be_v better_o amend_v by_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o there_o by_o good_a example_n to_o reclaim_v than_o by_o open_a desertion_n to_o set_v up_o opposite_a faction_n which_o heighten_v animosity_n embitter_n spirit_n render_v they_o deaf_a to_o one_o another_o advice_n and_o often_o proceed_v to_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n do_v so_o rational_o conclude_v it_o in_o the_o mark_v he_o give_v to_o distinguish_v between_o inspiration_n from_o god_n and_o diabolical_a enthusiasm_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n contrary_a to_o these_o or_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o do_v open_o disow_v and_o disclaim_v the_o same_o and_o stand_v up_o for_o they_o no_o far_o than_o they_o tend_v to_o promote_v the_o great_a interest_n of_o christianity_n truth_n holiness_n and_o peace_n fourteen_o noise●_n i_o come_v now_o to_o
speak_v with_o the_o author_n of_o bourignianism_n detect_v who_o may_v have_v allow_v one_o of_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n to_o be_v put_v in_o english_a and_o recommend_v as_o useful_a to_o advance_v the_o interest_n of_o true_a christianity_n without_o make_v such_o a_o noise_n about_o it_o yet_o it_o no_o soon_o come_v to_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o present_o raise_v the_o hue_n and-cry_a delusion_n and_o error_n and_o magnify_v it_o into_o a_o new_a and_o grow_a sect_n that_o he_o may_v get_v himself_o a_o name_n and_o have_v the_o glory_n to_o encounter_v and_o as_o he_o hope_v to_o defeat_v it_o but_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o so_o dreadful_a a_o enemy_n as_o he_o will_v seem_v at_o first_o onset_a they_o who_o bluster_v most_o be_v not_o always_o the_o most_o dangerous_a they_o who_o have_v read_v the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n and_o find_v that_o the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o be_v the_o essential_a truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o her_o singular_a sentiment_n which_o she_o say_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v do_v not_o contradict_v those_o essential_a truth_n do_v just_o wonder_v what_o have_v move_v the_o doctor_n to_o raise_v all_o this_o dust_n and_o clamour_n i_o know_v he_o once_o profess_v a_o great_a veneration_n for_o thomas_n à_fw-fr kempis_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr imitatione_n christi_fw-la but_o he_o be_v a_o mystic_a and_o one_o who_o seem_v to_o own_o his_o be_v immediate_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v the_o doctor_n despise_v he_o now_o as_o in_o his_o late_a letter_n he_o declare_v he_o have_v long_o since_o turn_v off_o such_o conversation_n and_o a_o decease_a friend_n of_o his_o have_v not_o only_o a_o great_a esteem_n for_o that_o book_n but_o also_o for_o other_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n such_o as_o the_o life_n of_o m._n de_fw-la renti_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o person_n i_o mean_v be_v the_o most_o pious_a and_o learned_a h._n scougall_n of_o who_o the_o reverend_a dr._n burnet_n now_o bishop_n of_o sarum_n give_v so_o deserve_v a_o character_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o bishop_n bedal_n life_n and_o with_o who_o he_o prevail_v to_o let_v he_o publish_v his_o devout_a treatise_n of_o the_o life_n of_o god_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o prefix_v a_o preface_n and_o to_o subjoin_v a_o discourse_n of_o his_o own_o of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o little_a book_n also_o contain_v a_o excellent_a idea_n of_o the_o divine_a life_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o particular_o a_o notion_n of_o faith_n far_o above_o the_o common_a and_o approach_v as_o near_o as_o any_o i_o know_v to_o that_o of_o a._n b._n viz._n that_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o sense_n and_o feel_a persuasion_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o have_v the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o divine_a life_n that_o sense_n have_v in_o the_o natural_a now_o the_o doctor_n profess_v a_o great_a esteem_n for_o these_o write_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o contain_v the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n and_o she_o require_v no_o regard_n to_o be_v have_v to_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o any_o shall_v find_v they_o useful_a for_o increase_v in_o they_o the_o love_n of_o god_n some_o think_v it_o unaccountable_a why_o the_o doctor_n shall_v fall_v so_o foul_a upon_o she_o for_o her_o accessary_a opinion_n and_o do_v not_o rather_o honour_v she_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o main_a truth_n and_o more_o favourable_o and_o candid_o construct_v the_o other_o xv._n thing_n there_o be_v variety_n of_o dish_n in_o spiritual_a as_o well_o as_o in_o bodily_a food_n and_o that_o may_v be_v very_o agreeable_a and_o healthful_a to_o one_o palate_n which_o another_o can_v relish_v why_o shall_v the_o doctor_n then_o set_v up_o to_o be_v a_o taster_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o because_o his_o nice_a and_o learned_a palate_n can_v relish_v some_o course_n and_o homely_a though_o very_o substantial_a fare_n shall_v he_o therefore_o cry_v out_o there_o be_v death_n in_o the_o pot_n and_o frighten_v all_o other_o from_o taste_v of_o it_o as_o far_o as_o his_o testimony_n can_v have_v influence_n we_o do_v not_o use_v to_o drive_v our_o flock_n from_o a_o good_a pasture_n even_o though_o all_o the_o herb_n in_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o nourish_v they_o who_o have_v a_o true_a sense_n and_o relish_v of_o divine_a thing_n if_o they_o be_v read_v the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n will_v be_v so_o affect_v with_o the_o divine_a truth_n contain_v therein_o as_o they_o will_v quite_o pass_v over_o the_o accessary_a opinion_n they_o will_v run_v to_o the_o pearl_n and_o gather_v the_o wholesome_a food_n and_o apply_v themselves_o only_o to_o thing_n which_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mortify_n of_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n the_o doctor_n shall_v have_v consider_v the_o woe_n pronounce_v against_o all_o they_o by_o who_o offence_n do_v come_v and_o not_o rash_o have_v lay_v a_o stumbling-block_n before_o his_o brethren_n and_o by_o his_o abusive_a and_o unlovely_a character_n endeavour_v to_o raise_v prejudices_fw-la against_o and_o frighten_v many_o from_o a._n b_n write_n where_o they_o may_v have_v reap_v so_o much_o good_a and_o profit_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a sense_n of_o divine_a thing_n xvi_o sect._n the_o doctor_n be_v unjust_a in_o his_o title_n page_n where_o he_o call_v his_o narrative_n the_o delusion_n and_o error_n of_o a._n b._n and_o her_o grow_v sect._n i_o know_v no_o such_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n a._n b._n be_v grieve_v there_o be_v so_o many_o sect_n already_o so_o far_o be_v she_o from_o design_v to_o make_v a_o new_a one_o i_o know_v none_o who_o esteem_v her_o write_n that_o be_v form_v into_o any_o sect._n i_o know_v of_o no_o separate_a meeting_n nor_o new_a rite_n nor_o other_o symbol_n that_o distinguish_v this_o sect._n there_o be_v romanist_n calvinist_n lutheran_n there_o be_v of_o the_o episcopal_a and_o presbyterian_a persuasion_n who_o esteem_v those_o write_n as_o they_o do_v other_o good_a book_n yet_o they_o form_v no_o new_a sect_n or_o party_n there_o be_v none_o far_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o sect_n than_o they_o unless_o this_o be_v call_v a_o new_a sect_n to_o endeavour_v after_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n viz._n a_o entire_a and_o brotherly_a union_n in_o divine_a charity_n xvii_o countryman_n he_o be_v neither_o kind_n nor_o just_a to_o his_o country_n man_n in_o tell_v the_o world_n the_o infection_n have_v seize_v many_o in_o scotland_n and_o some_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n who_o have_v be_v repute_v man_n of_o sense_n learning_n and_o probity_n they_o may_v have_v read_v those_o write_n as_o they_o do_v other_o good_a book_n without_o be_v brand_v for_o heretic_n and_o sectarian_n he_o may_v have_v discover_v what_o he_o think_v to_o be_v delusion_n or_o error_n without_o defame_v his_o countryman_n or_o bring_v up_o a_o evil_a report_n upon_o they_o his_o book_n may_v have_v instruct_v and_o confute_v they_o without_o point_v they_o out_o i_o be_o persuade_v the_o doctor_n will_v think_v it_o a_o cry_a sin_n to_o proclaim_v those_o person_n to_o be_v thief_n robber_n and_o murderer_n though_o i_o think_v his_o say_n so_o will_v do_v they_o no_o great_a hurt_v and_o if_o he_o will_v consider_v thing_n calm_o he_o will_v find_v it_o no_o less_o and_o perhaps_o a_o great_a injustice_n to_o tell_v the_o world_n they_o be_v become_v heretic_n blasphemer_n idolater_n and_o new_a sectarian_n and_o so_o thereby_o as_o far_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o murder_v their_o reputation_n make_v some_o to_o despise_v and_o abhor_v they_o and_o excite_v other_o to_o persecute_v they_o as_o man_n unworthy_a to_o live_v but_o as_o a_o conqueror_n he_o be_v resolve_v upon_o to_o a_o triumph_n and_o to_o add_v to_o the_o glory_n they_o must_v be_v lead_v at_o his_o chariot_n xviii_o shadow_n the_o doctor_n have_v take_v up_o two_o long_a narrative_n in_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n the_o first_o in_o prove_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o high_a character_n which_o m._n de_n cort_n m._n poiret_n and_o other_o give_v of_o the_o person_n and_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n upon_o their_o bare_a word_n and_o the_o second_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o character_n she_o give_v of_o herself_o and_o she_o own_o sentiment_n upon_o her_o own_o testimony_n without_o sufficient_a enquiry_n and_o evidence_n and_o in_o both_o these_o i_o know_v none_o will_v contend_v with_o he_o in_o the_o first_o he_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o the_o great_a business_n of_o her_o friend_n be_v to_o recommend_v she_o